Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n church_n divine_a revelation_n 2,708 5 9.4498 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A19952 The reply of the most illustrious Cardinall of Perron, to the ansvveare of the most excellent King of Great Britaine the first tome. Translated into English.; Réplique à la response du sérénissime roy de la Grand Bretagne. Vol. 1. English Du Perron, Jacques Davy, 1556-1618.; Cary, Elizabeth, Lady, 1585 or 6-1639.; Du Perron, Jacques Davy, 1556-1618. Lettre de Mgr le Cal Du Perron, envoyée au sieur Casaubon en Angleterre. English.; Casaubon, Isaac, 1559-1614. Ad epistolam illustr. et reverendiss. Cardinalis Peronii, responsio. English. Selections. 1630 (1630) STC 6385; ESTC S107359 685,466 494

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

to_o confer_v it_o 〈◊〉_d marriage_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d penance_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d and_o vocal_a confession_n to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n for_o one_o of_o the_o condition_n 24._o necessary_a to_o this_o sacrament_n 8_o order_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n and_o extreme_a onction_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o seven_o sacrament_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n acknowledge_v and_o 7._o the_o greek_a communion_n alsoe_o make_v profession_n to_o embrace_v with_o us._n a_o church_n which_o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o baptism_n use_v 70._o oil_n 5._o salt_n bapt_v wax_n light_n 101_o exorcism_n 8._o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 1_o the_o word_n epheta_n and_o other_o thing_n that_o accompany_v it_o to_o testify_v by_o oil_n that_o in_o baptism_n we_o be_v make_v christian_n that_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o unction_n of_o christ_n by_o salt_n that_o god_n contract_v with_o we_o in_o baptism_n a_o alliance_n for_o ever_o follow_v the_o stile_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o call_v eternal_a alliance_n alliance_n of_o salt_n by_o the_o light_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o light_n that_o enlighten_v all_o man_n commeinge_v into_o the_o world_n 205._o by_o exorcism_n that_o baptism_n put_v we_o out_o of_o the_o devil_n possession_n 8_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o it_o be_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n that_o give_v strength_n to_o all_o sacrament_n 1._o by_o the_o word_n epheta_n that_o god_n accomplish_v spiritual_o in_o we_o by_o baptism_n what_o he_o wrought_v corporal_o in_o the_o deaf_a and_o dumb_a man_n a_o church_n that_o esteem_a baptism_n for_o person_n of_o full_a age_n necessary_a with_o a_o conditional_a necessity_n 15._o and_o for_o child_n necessary_a with_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n permit_v bapt_a lay_v man_n to_o baptise_v in_o danger_n of_o death_n a_o church_n that_o use_v holy_a water_n consecrate_v by_o certain_a word_n and_o ceremony_n and_o make_v use_v of_o it_o 27._o both_o for_o baptism_n 30_o and_o against_o enchantment_n 23._o and_o to_o make_v exorcism_n and_o conjuration_n against_o evil_a spirit_n fron_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o 71._o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o though_o he_o be_v after_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n yet_o not_o to_o be_v except_v against_o by_o english_a man_n who_o take_v the_o original_n of_o their_o mission_n from_o he_o ordain_v when_o englad_n return_v back_o from_o paganism_n to_o christian_a religion_n that_o the_o temple_n shall_v not_o be_v demolish_v but_o expiate_v by_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o holy_a water_n a_o church_n that_o in_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n hold_v diverse_a degree_n 3._o the_o bishop_n the_o priest_n the_o deacon_n the_o acolite_a the_o exorcist_n the_o reader_n and_o the_o porter_n and_o consecrate_v and_o bless_v they_o with_o diverse_a form_n and_o ceremony_n and_o in_o the_o order_n episcopal_a acknowledge_v diverse_a seat_n of_o iurisdictino_fw-la of_o positive_a right_n to_o wit_n archbishop_n primate_fw-la patriarch_n leon_n and_o one_o supereminent_a by_o divine_a law_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n without_o who_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v appertain_v to_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o the_o want_n of_o who_o presence_n either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o legate_n 10_o or_o his_o confirmation_n make_v all_o counsel_n pretend_v to_o be_v universal_a unlawful_a a_o church_n which_o hold_v a_o 11._o succession_n of_o bishop_n not_o interrupt_v since_o the_o first_o mission_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o a_o essential_a condition_n of_o she_o &_o repute_v those_o who_o have_v it_o not_o or_o that_o communicate_v with_o those_o that_o have_v it_o not_o for_o schismatic_o and_o cull_v pable_z of_o the_o same_o curse_n with_o core_n dathan_n and_o 〈◊〉_d a_o church_n that_o hold_v the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o act_n of_o ordination_n for_o a_o thing_n of_o divine_a law_n fine_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n 53._o and_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n those_o that_o hold_v it_o not_o a_o church_n 46._o that_o hold_v free_a will_n for_o a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n &_o reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 76._o that_o hold_v that_o faith_n only_o without_o evangelicall_a work_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o salvation_n impo_n that_o wicked_a man_n persevere_v to_o the_o end_n be_v reprobate_n but_o not_o predestinate_a to_o evil_a 13._o that_o the_o certainty_n that_o particular_a man_n presume_v to_o have_v of_o their_o predestination_n be_v a_o rash_a boldness_n a_o church_n wherein_o their_o service_n be_v say_v throughout_o the_o east_n in_o greek_a and_o through_o the_o west_n aswell_o in_o africa_n as_o in_o europe_n 〈◊〉_d in_o latin_a although_o that_o in_o none_o of_o the_o province_n neither_o of_o europe_n nor_o africa_n except_o in_o italy_n &_o in_o the_o city_n where_o the_o roman_a colony_n reside_v the_o latin_a be_v understand_v by_o the_o simple_a people_n but_o only_o by_o the_o learned_a in_o brief_a a_o church_n that_o use_v either_o in_o gender_n or_o in_o species_n either_o inform_v or_o in_o analogy_n the_o very_a same_o ceremony_n which_o be_v the_o word_n well_o know_v the_o all_o man_n which_o the_o catholic_n use_v universal_o at_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 88_o observe_v the_o distinctino_fw-it of_o the_o feast_n and_o ordinary_a day_n the_o distinction_n 27_o of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o lay_v habit_n 1._o the_o reverence_n of_o sacred_a vessel_n the_o custom_n 4._o of_o shave_v 1._o and_o unction_n for_o the_o collation_n of_o order_n the_o ceremony_n of_o 5._o wash_v their_o hand_n at_o the_o altar_n before_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o mystery_n 19_o the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n before_o the_o 〈◊〉_d ibid._n pronounce_v a_o part_n of_o the_o service_n at_o the_o altar_n with_o a_o low_a voice_n and_o wheard_n 8._o make_v procession_n with_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o martyr_n accompany_v the_o dead_a to_o their_o 〈◊〉_d with_o 2._o wax_n taper_n in_o sign_n of_o joy_n and_o future_a certainty_n of_o their_o resurrection_n have_v the_o picture_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saînt_n both_o 3_o out_o of_o church_n and_o theod_n in_o church_n and_o cassian_n upon_o the_o very_a altar_n of_o martyr_n not_o to_o adore_v they_o as_o adoration_n signify_v di_o nine_o worship_n but_o to_o reverence_v by_o they_o the_o soldier_n and_o champion_n of_o christ_n milit_fw-la use_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o all_o their_o conversation_n 2._o imprint_v it_o on_o the_o forehead_n of_o their_o catechumenist_n 6._o paint_v it_o on_o the_o portal_n of_o all_o the_o house_n of_o the_o faithful_a hil._n give_v the_o blessing_n to_o the_o people_n with_o their_o hand_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 〈◊〉_d employ_v it_o to_o drive_v away_o evil_a spirit_n 11._o propose_v in_o jerusalem_fw-la the_o very_a cross_n to_o be_v adore_v on_o good_a friday_n 〈◊〉_d use_v incense_n in_o their_o synax_n not_o particular_o incense_v of_o arabia_n but_o indifferent_o odoriferous_a gum_n for_o they_o hold_v not_o incense_v for_o sacrifice_v as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n but_o for_o a_o simple_a ceremony_n design_v to_o represent_v the_o effect_n of_o prayer_n describe_v by_o these_o word_n of_o david_n let_v my_o prayer_n arise_v even_o as_o incense_v into_o thy_o presence_n and_o 〈◊〉_d by_o these_o of_o the_o revelation_n the_o smoke_n of_o the_o incense_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n ascend_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n before_o god_n and_o final_o a_o church_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v the_o infallible_a promise_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d perpetual_o visible_a and_o eminent_a in_o her_o communion_n perpetual_o pure_a and_o uncorrupted_a in_o her_o doctrine_n and_o in_o her_o sacrament_n and_o perpetual_o bind_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o succession_n of_o her_o ministry_n and_o that_o 6._o to_o she_o only_o belong_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o decision_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o out_o of_o the_o succession_n 16._o of_o her_o communion_n 38_o of_o her_o doctrine_n 37._o and_o of_o her_o ministry_n there_o be_v neither_o church_n nor_o salvation_n behold_v what_o the_o excellent_a king_n when_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o to_o consider_v it_o at_o sufficient_a leisure_n shall_v find_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n aug._n and_o of_o the_o 4_o first_o council_n let_v his_o majesty_n see_v whether_o by_o these_o feature_n he_o can_v know_v the_o face_n of_o caluines_n church_n or_o of_o we_o of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o word_n catholic_a have_v be_v common_a to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o to_o the_o modern_a
christian_n wherein_o they_o be_v contain_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o from_o the_o lesser_a of_o these_o computation_n nothing_o can_v be_v infer_v against_o the_o large_a to_o prove_v it_o so_o when_o origen_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o psalm_n speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n he_o follow_v the_o canon_n of_o esdras_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o twenty_o two_o hebrew_a letter_n wherein_o neither_o tobias_n nor_o judith_n nor_o that_o of_o wisdom_n have_v 19_o any_o place_n yond_o must_v not_o be_v ignorant_a say_v he_o that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o testament_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o hebrew_n be_v 22._o according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o their_o letter_n and_o when_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o number_n of_o the_o volume_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o follow_v the_o accessary_a computation_n of_o the_o christian_n &_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o posthumall_a book_n &_o set_v down_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o judith_n toby_n &_o that_o of_o wisdom_n among_o the_o canonical_a book_n when_o 27._o there_o be_v present_v say_v he_o to_o those_o that_o be_v new_o scholar_n in_o divine_a study_n any_o read_n of_o the_o divine_a volume_n in_o which_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o seem_v obscure_a as_o the_o book_n of_o hester_n or_o of_o judith_n or_o of_o toby_n or_o the_o precept_n of_o wisdom_n they_o receive_v it_o willing_o but_o if_o the_o book_n of_o leviticus_fw-la be_v read_v to_o they_o their_o spirit_n be_v present_o dull_v and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o psalm_n where_o he_o reckon_v the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o computation_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o hebrew_n letter_n he_o add_v 19_o out_o of_o this_o rank_n be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n which_o the_o hebrew_n call_v sarbit_n sarbaneell_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o sceptre_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o which_o word_n he_o intend_v not_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o then_o wherefore_o have_v purpose_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o canonical_a book_n shall_v he_o mention_v the_o maccabee_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n insert_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o esdras_n likewise_o when_o s._n epiphanius_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o hebrew_n weight_n &_o measure_n &_o in_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o sect_n of_o epicurus_n speak_v of_o the_o canonicalll_v book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n he_o follow_v the_o catalogue_n of_o esdras_n &_o the_o cabbale_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o twenty_o two_o hebrew_a hebraic_n letter_n and_o say_v that_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n &_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la be_v not_o of_o this_o number_n the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n and_o that_o of_o jesusthe_n son_n of_o syrach_n be_v useful_a and_o profitable_a but_o be_v not_o set_v down_o among_o the_o book_n enroll_v that_o be_v to_o say_v enroll_v by_o esdras_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o be_v not_o place_v in_o the_o aron_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o testimony_n for_o so_o it_o must_v be_v read_v &_o not_o neither_o in_o the_o aron_n nor_o in_o the_o ark_n as_o it_o be_v read_v at_o this_o day_n by_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o book_n writer_n &_o interpreter_n who_o of_o the_o word_n aron_n which_o in_o hebrew_n signify_v ark_n have_v make_v aaron_n brother_n of_o moses_n and_o when_o he_o dispute_v against_o aetius_n head_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o anomean_n he_o folllow_v the_o accessary_a computation_n of_o the_o church_n &_o set_v both_o those_o among_o the_o 76._o divine_a and_o canonical_a scripture_n you_o must_v say_v he_o turn_v over_o the_o twenty_o seven_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o the_o hebrew_n reckon_v twenty_o two_o and_o the_o four_o ghospell_n and_o the_o fourteen_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n and_o the_o act_n of_o 〈◊〉_d apostle_n make_v before_o and_o during_o the_o same_o time_n and_o the_o catholic_n epistle_n of_o james_n peter_n john_n and_o jude_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o john_n and_o the_o two_o wisdom_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o of_o solomon_n and_o that_o of_o the_o son_n of_o syrach_n and_o in_o sum_n all_o the_o divine_a scripture_n and_o final_o the_o four_o and_o last_o advertisement_n shall_v be_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o all_o the_o greek_a canon_n wherein_o the_o maccabee_n be_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n except_o those_o that_o follow_v the_o double_a computation_n whereof_o we_o now_o speak_v which_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o very_a judgement_n of_o geneva_n imperfect_a 26._o &_o omitt_v those_o bookès_fw-fr the_o caluinists_n théselue_n confess_v to_o be_v canonical_a and_o to_o prove_v it_o so_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o melito_n the_o book_n of_o hester_n be_v omit_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n &_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o 4._o council_n of_o laodicea_n the_o apocalypse_n be_v forgoten_a in_o the_o synopsis_fw-la false_o impute_v to_o s._n athanas_n the_o book_n of_o hester_n be_v cut_v of_o in_o the_o canon_n lay_v to_o s._n gregory_n of_o naziazenes_n charge_n i_o say_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n because_o fid_fw-we this_o canon_n leave_v out_o wisdom_n which_o s._n greg._n of_o nazianzen_n in_o his_o true_a write_n cite_v as_o canonical_a the_o book_n of_o hester_n and_o that_o of_o the_o apocalypse_n be_v exclude_v in_o the_o catalogue_n attribute_v to_o amphilochius_n the_o book_n of_o hester_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n be_v call_v in_o question_n in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o josephus_n a_o author_n that_o be_v a_o hebrew_n by_o nation_n but_o who_o book_n be_v 1._o write_v in_o greek_a the_o book_n of_o job_n be_v omit_v &_o principal_o according_a to_o their_o computation_n that_o will_v have_v job_n to_o have_v be_v before_o moses_n as_o merc._n origen_n among_o the_o old_a christian_n &_o mercerus_n the_o caluinist_n among_o the_o modern_a &_o raby_n moses_n kimhi_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o in_o all_o the_o judaical_a antiquity_n job._n of_o the_o same_o josephus_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o job_n history_n by_o mean_n whereof_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o those_o imperfect_a sanct._n roll_n against_o the_o volume_n by_o they_o omit_v and_o indeed_o notwithstanding_o this_o catalogue_n josephus_n leave_v not_o of_o if_o we_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o work_n against_o appion_n to_o allege_v the_o book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 2._o for_o one_o of_o the_o piece_n of_o the_o jewish_a law_n when_o he_o write_v the_o law_n say_v that_o the_o woman_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n worse_o than_o man_n and_o that_o a_o man_n iniquity_n be_v better_a they_o the_o good_a work_n of_o a_o woman_n nor_o to_o insert_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o macchabee_n into_o his_o treaty_n of_o the_o dominion_n of_o reason_n over_o the_o sense_n yea_o with_o the_o title_n of_o a_o sacred_a book_n if_o we_o believe_v the_o final_a clause_n of_o the_o work_n which_o be_v defective_a in_o the_o greek_a text_n but_o be_v in_o the_o ancient_a latin_a translation_n acknowledge_v &_o publish_v by_o erasmus_n for_o whereas_o the_o same_o impress_n josephus_n distinguish_v between_o the_o book_n write_v before_o artaxerxes_n when_o the_o prophet_n flourish_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n &_o the_o book_n writté_fw-fr since_o so_o far_o of_o be_v he_o from_o exclude_v hereby_o the_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n write_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o contrary_a wise_a in_o 1_o note_v that_o the_o book_n write_v since_o artaxerxes_n be_v not_o repute_v so_o worthy_a of_o credit_n as_o the_o former_a because_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o prophet_n have_v not_o be_v exact_a he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v be_v write_v by_o the_o prophet_n but_o with_o a_o belief_n less_o assure_v &_o mingle_v with_o some_o uncertainty_n since_o artaxerxes_n say_v he_o even_o to_o our_o time_n other_o thing_n have_v be_v write_v 1._o but_o they_o be_v not_o esteem_v worthy_a of_o the_o same_o credit_n as_o the_o former_a becanse_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o prophet_n have_v not_o be_v exact_a now_o this_o uncertainty_n s._n john_n &_o s._n paul_n seem_v to_o take_v away_o s._n john_n when_o he_o report_v that_o our_o lord_n assist_v at_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o winter_n who_o institution_n be_v describe_v in_o the_o only_a collection_n of_o the_o maccabee_n for_o the_o history_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o winter_n be_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n
in_o our_o own_o word_n or_o in_o the_o word_n of_o her_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n i_o think_v we_o ought_v rather_o to_o seek_v she_o in_o his_o word_n from_o he_o that_o be_v truth_n and_o well_o know_v his_o own_o body_n and_o a_o while_n after_o i_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n demonstrate_v by_o humane_a instruction_n but_o by_o divine_a or_o acle_n and_o again_o let_v we_o then_o seek_v she_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n he_o do_v not_o intend_v that_o to_o seek_v the_o church_n in_o the_o scripture_n 3_o between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n be_v to_o seek_v the_o doctrine_n of_o ibidem_fw-la the_o church_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o examine_v by_o the_o scripture_n the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v contest_v between_o the_o church_n and_o the_o donatist_n but_o to_o seek_v the_o mark_n and_o external_a and_o visible_a character_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o church_n be_v discern_v by_o those_o mark_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v may_v be_v after_o know_v by_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o understanding_n whereof_o it_o must_v be_v note_v that_o there_o be_v two_o question_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n the_o one_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n to_o know_v on_o what_o party_n either_o of_o the_o catholic_n or_o of_o they_o the_o true_a society_n of_o the_o church_n reside_v the_o other_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o which_o they_o or_o the_o catholic_n hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n the_o first_o question_n then_o which_o be_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n saint_n augustine_n will_v it_o shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o scripture_n alone_o for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o precise_a controversy_n wherein_o the_o question_n be_v which_o of_o the_o two_o society_n be_v the_o church_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o true_a church_n can_v be_v discern_v but_o the_o second_o question_n which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n he_o will_v have_v it_o decide_v by_o the_o only_o deposition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o faith_n full_a guardian_n and_o depositarie_n of_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n to_o seek_v then_o according_a to_o saint_n augustine_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n the_o church_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o search_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o contentious_a point_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o seek_v the_o visible_a mark_n and_o note_n by_o which_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v exterior_o discern_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o donatist_n to_o prove_v that_o their_o church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o not_o the_o catholic_a church_n allege_v human_a act_n and_o human_a proof_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v receive_v into_o her_o communion_n without_o any_o expiation_n and_o purgation_n of_o precede_a penance_n those_o that_o have_v deliur_v the_o holy_a book_n to_o be_v burn_v and_o have_v sacrifice_v to_o the_o false_a god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o therefore_o that_o she_o be_v pollute_v with_o their_o contagion_n and_o be_v perish_v and_o then_o that_o the_o only_a faction_n of_o donatus_n which_o have_v remain_v pure_a from_o this_o contagion_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o saint_n augustine_n contrariwise_o say_v that_o against_o all_o these_o word_n which_o be_v human_a proof_n and_o word_n for_o if_o he_o that_o ordain_v cecilianus_n have_v deliver_v up_o the_o holy_a book_n in_o persecution_n time_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v by_o human_a testimony_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o act_n of_o notary_n and_o clerk_n even_o profane_a the_o catholic_n have_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n wherein_o the_o work_n of_o the_o church_n be_v describe_v to_o wit_n that_o she_o ought_v to_o be_v visible_a eminent_a universal_a perpetual_a and_o that_o to_o examine_v the_o church_n according_a to_o these_o mark_n it_o be_v to_o seek_v she_o in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o examine_v she_o according_a to_o the_o production_n of_o the_o donatist_n it_o be_v 2._o to_o seek_v she_o in_o humane_a word_n what_o be_v say_v he_o our_o word_n wherein_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v she_o etc._n etc._n all_o that_o we_o object_n one_o against_o a_o other_o of_o the_o delivery_n 3._o of_o the_o holy_a book_n of_o the_o sacrifice_a to_o jdoll_n and_o of_o the_o persecution_n those_o be_v our_o word_n and_o a_o while_n after_o i_o will_v not_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o human_a instruction_n but_o by_o divine_a oracle_n for_o if_o the_o holse_a scripture_n have_v design_v the_o church_n to_o be_v in_o africa_n alone_o and_o in_o a_o smalle_a number_n of_o roman_a inhabitant_n make_v their_o conventicle_n in_o rock_n and_o mount_v 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o the_o house_n and_o territory_n of_o a_o certain_a spanish_a lady_n than_o whatsoever_o record_n can_v be_v produce_v there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o donatist_n that_o have_v the_o church_n if_o the_o scripture_n assign_v it_o to_o a_o little_a number_n of_o mauritanian_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d province_n you_o must_v go_v to_o the_o rogatist_n if_o in_o a_o smalle_a troop_n of_o bizacenians_n and_o tripolitans_n &_o provincials_n the_o maximinianist_n have_v meet_v with_o she_o if_o those_o of_o the_o east_n alone_o we_o must_v seek_v she_o among_o the_o arrian_n macedonian_n eunomian_o and_o other_o if_o there_o be_v other_o for_o who_o can_v number_v the_o heresy_n as_o proper_a and_o particular_a of_o every_o particular_a province_n but_o if_o by_o the_o divine_a and_o most_o certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n she_o be_v design_v in_o all_o nation_n whatsoever_o they_o produce_v and_o whensoever_o it_o be_v produce_v by_o those_o that_o say_v there_o be_v christ_n if_o we_o be_v 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o 〈◊〉_d hear_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o shepherd_n say_v believe_v they_o not_o for_o every_o one_o of_o those_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v but_o this_o which_o be_v over_o all_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o self_n same_o place_n where_o the_o other_o be_v and_o therefore_o let_v we_o seek_v she_o in_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n the_o place_n the_o of_o the_o scripture_n where_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o donatist_n to_o seek_v the_o church_n be_v these_o in_o thy_o seed_n all_o the_o nation_n upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v bless_v the_o child_n of_o the_o forsake_a 165._o shall_v be_v in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d number_n than_o those_o of_o she_o that_o have_v a_o husband_n this_o gospel_n must_v be_v declare_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o then_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o consummation_n of_o age_n and_o other_o such_o like_a and_o the_o argument_n that_o he_o 48._o bring_v to_o manifest_v the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n be_v these_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v he_o have_v this_o for_o a_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v she_o be_v they_o 50_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n then_o that_o be_v not_o she_o item_n you_o have_v the_o church_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o and_o to_o grow_v till_o the_o harvest_n you_o have_v the_o city_n whereof_o he_o that_o build_v it_o have_v say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v it_o be_v she_o then_o that_o be_v most_o evident_a 104._o not_o in_o any_o one_o part_n of_o the_o world_n but_o over_o all_o and_o other_o the_o like_a but_o as_o for_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n i_o say_v again_o and_o i_o say_v it_o bold_o 26._o that_o saint_n augustine_n never_o intend_v either_o that_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n shall_v be_v try_v by_o the_o doctrine_n nor_o that_o the_o article_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v between_o they_o shall_v be_v decide_v by_o scripture_n but_o that_o the_o point_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v examine_v by_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a mark_n that_o of_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a mark_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o difference_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o report_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o deny_v that_o in_o disputation_n against_o other_o heresy_n when_o point_n be_v handle_v which_o be_v here_o esteem_v to_o be_v expresselie_o treat_v of_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o that_o he_o often_o call_v upon_o their_o judgement_n for_o who_o doubt_v but_o that_o where_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a &_o
in_o as_o high_a fame_n as_o be_v the_o first_o inventour_n of_o the_o same_o nor_o can_v your_o work_n be_v any_o whit_n disgrace_v by_o those_o who_o think_v it_o do_v with_o too_o much_o 〈◊〉_d for_o have_v it_o be_v in_o michael_n angel_n power_n to_o perfect_v his_o great_a judgement_n in_o one_o hour_n he_o who_o for_o that_o shall_v value_n it_o the_o less_o his_o own_o weak_a judgement_n will_v therein_o express_v and_o though_o we_o in_o a_o common_a proverb_n faith_n that_o rome_n be_v not_o build_v all_o up_o in_o one_o day_n yet_o can_v we_o see_v a_o city_n great_a as_o rome_n in_o all_o her_o 〈◊〉_d in_o one_o minute_n come_v to_o such_o perfection_n we_o may_v more_o express_v our_o wonder_n and_o not_o make_v the_o glory_n less_o so_o i_o conclude_v with_o modest_a truth_n and_o dare_v all_o their_o free_a censure_n who_o can_v but_o compare_v and_o whosoever_o shall_v try_v may_v spend_v his_o age_n ere_o in_o your_o whole_a work_n he_o shall_v mend_v one_o page_n a_o table_n of_o the_o title_n and_o summary_n of_o the_o chapter_n contain_v in_o these_o four_o first_o book_n of_o the_o reply_n to_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n of_o great_a britain_n the_o first_o book_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n cathòlicke_fw-mi fol._n 13._o ii_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 17_o iii_o of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n 21_o iu._n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n 23_o v._o of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n 25_o vi_o from_o what_o place_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v 32_o vii_o of_o the_o example_n which_o we_o have_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n 35_o viii_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o what_o union_n it_o consist_v 36_o ix_o of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o predestinate_a and_o by_o way_n of_o adiunction_n of_o the_o visibilitie_n or_o invisibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n 39_o x._o of_o the_o unity_n of_o eternal_a faith_n 48_o xi_o of_o other_o invisible_a union_n 51_o xii_o of_o the_o knowledge_n that_o the_o predestinate_a have_v of_o their_o predestination_n 52_o xiii_o of_o the_o inequality_n of_o these_o two_o phrase_n to_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o some_o member_n of_o the_o church_n depart_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 55_o fourteen_o how_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n there_o be_v a_o sacred_a war_n 57_o xv._n of_o the_o pretend_a precept_n to_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n 58_o xvi_o of_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o place_n allege_v by_o the_o father_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 68_o xuii_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n 69_o xviii_o of_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n with_o the_o modern_a 70_o xix_o of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o word_n catholic_n have_v be_v common_a to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n and_o to_o the_o modern_a 74_o xx_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n 76_o xxi_o of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o protestant_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n 77_o xxii_o of_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n and_o the_o modern_a 78_o 78_o xxiii_o of_o the_o communion_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n have_v by_o letter_n with_o those_o of_o the_o west_n 79_o xxiv_o of_o these_o word_n of_o the_o constitution_n of_o s._n clement_n the_o universal_a episcopate_n be_v commit_v to_o bishop_n 80_o xxv_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o other_o bishop_n 81_o xxvi_o of_o form_v letter_n 113_o xxvii_o of_o pretend_a excommunication_n attempt_v against_o the_o pope_n 116_o the_o second_o book_n chap._n i._o of_o counsel_n 125_o ii_o of_o the_o effect_n of_o counsel_n for_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n 127_o iii_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o other_o patriarch_n 128_o iu._n of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o scripture_n concern_v the_o time_n of_o s._n peter_n 〈◊〉_d at_o antioch_n and_o at_o rome_n 137_o v._o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n touch_v the_o government_n of_o the_o patriarch_n 147_o vi_o of_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o word_n church_n suburbicarie_n make_v by_o ruffinus_n in_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n 161_o vii_o of_o the_o claim_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 178_o viii_o of_o the_o order_n of_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n 204_o ix_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 217_o x._o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 219_o xi_o of_o the_o order_n of_o sit_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 220_o xii_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n of_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 222_o xiii_o of_o the_o order_n of_o sit_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n 229_o fourteen_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n 231_o xv._n of_o the_o call_n of_o counsel_n 232_o the_o three_o book_n chap._n i._o of_o appeal_v 244_o ii_o of_o the_o opposition_n of_o saint_n ireneus_fw-la to_o pope_n victor_n 249_o iii_o of_o the_o opposition_n of_o s._n cyprian_n 251_o iu._n of_o the_o commission_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o great_a for_o the_o judgement_n of_o cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n 264_o v._o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n concern_v the_o beyond-sea_o appeal_v 273_o vi_o of_o the_o order_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n 281_o vii_o of_o the_o african_a council_n 309_o viii_o whether_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o the_o african_a canon_n be_v more_o faithful_a than_o the_o greek_a rapsodie_n 315_o ix_o of_o the_o difficulty_n touch_v the_o epistle_n that_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o african_a council_n 326_o x._o of_o the_o question_n of_o appeal_v treat_v off_o in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n 329_o xi_o of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 348_o the_o four_o book_n chap._n i._n the_o estate_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n 376_o ii_o what_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v wrought_v to_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n 378_o iii_o of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o those_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 379_o iu._n of_o the_o indivisibility_n of_o the_o church_n 398_o u._n of_o the_o effect_n that_o division_n bring_v to_o the_o church_n 399_o vi_o of_o the_o pretend_a corruption_n of_o the_o church_n 400_o vii_o of_o the_o exclusion_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 402_o viii_o of_o the_o quality_n wherein_o the_o catholic_a church_n attribute_n to_o herself_o the_o name_n of_o whole_a 410_o ix_o of_o the_o sense_n where_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_n 411_o x._o of_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v cut_v off_o the_o rest_n from_o her_o communion_n 413_o xi_o of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o heretic_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n ibid._n xii_o of_o the_o proceed_n of_o other_o sect_n 414_o xiii_o of_o the_o persuasion_n that_o other_o sect_n pretend_v to_o have_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o church_n by_o scripture_n ibid._n fourteen_o of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o heretic_n have_v dispute_v the_o word_n catholic_a 415_o xv._n of_o the_o case_n wherein_o the_o communion_n in_o vow_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n may_v be_v impute_v as_o actual_a 417_o xvi_o of_o the_o equivocation_n of_o term_n diminutive_n employ_v for_o negative_n 419_o xvii_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o work_n iutitule_v imperfect_a 422_o xviii_o of_o the_o understanding_n of_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n augustine_n to_o seek_v the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n 423_o xix_o of_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o word_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n in_o the_o thirty_o third_n homely_a upon_o the_o acts._n 427_o xx._n of_o the_o rule_n to_o judge_v admit_v by_o saint_n chrysostome_n and_o saint_n augustine_n 429_o xxi_o of_o the_o application_n of_o the_o thesis_n of_o this_o observation_n to_o his_o hipothesis_n 430_o xxii_o of_o the_o personal_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n 431_o xxiii_o of_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n 434_o xxiv_o of_o the_o hold_n of_o a_o council_n 436_o xxv_o of_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o disputation_n to_o
of_o catholic_n to_o the_o donatist_n because_o of_o the_o separation_n of_o communion_n and_o yet_o grant_v it_o to_o those_o from_o who_o the_o donatist_n have_v take_v their_o doctrine_n because_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o communion_n cyprian_n people_n say_v s._n pacian_n have_v never_o be_v call_v otherwise_o then_o catholic_a and_o saint_n vincentius_n lerinensis_n o_o admirable_a change_n the_o author_n of_o oneself_o same_o opinion_n be_v adjudge_v catholic_n and_o the_o 95_o sectary_n heretic_n and_o s._n augustin_n dissension_n and_o division_n say_v he_o make_v you_o heretic_n and_o peace_n and_o unitìe_n make_v catholic_n and_o that_o in_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n this_o article_n be_v insert_v into_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o promotion_n of_o bishop_n whither_o they_o believe_v that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n none_o can_v be_v save_v and_o that_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o cyrtha_n it_o be_v repeat_v by_o s._n augustin_n who_o be_v secretary_n thereto_o in_o thesis_n word_n whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o this_o catholic_a church_n how_o praise-worthie_a soever_o he_o conceive_v his_o life_n 52_o to_o be_v by_o this_o only_o crime_n that_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n shall_v remain_v upon_o he_o and_o after_o by_o fulgentius_n in_o these_o word_n believe_v firm_o and_o doubt_v it_o not_o at_o all_o that_o no_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o only_a ghost_n if_o he_o be_v not_o reconcile_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o alm_n soever_o he_o may_v give_v yea_o though_o he_o shall_v shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n can_v in_o any_o sort_n be_v save_v that_o i_o say_v be_v 39_o against_o or_o principal_o against_o the_o donatist_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o donatist_n agree_v in_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o the_o scripture_n with_o the_o catholic_n you_o be_v with_o we_o say_v s._n augustine_n in_o baptism_n in_o the_o creed_n and_o 48._o in_o all_o the_o other_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n and_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o final_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o be_v not_o with_o we_o and_o yet_o they_o differ_v only_o in_o one_o point_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o as_o s._n augustin_n himself_o who_o principal_o triumph_v over_o this_o heresy_n confess_v can_v not_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o scripture_n this_o say_v he_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o 29._o church_n neither_o thou_o nor_o i_o do_v evidentlie_o read_v and_o in_o the_o first_o book_n against_o 33._o cresconius_n though_o for_o this_o there_o be_v no_o example_n in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o even_o in_o this_o we_o follow_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o have_v please_v the_o universal_a church_n which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n do_v recommend_v and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o ourselves_o say_v he_o dare_v 4._o affirm_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o we_o be_v uphold_v by_o the_o unanimous_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o five_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o this_o prescribe_v we_o nothing_o but_o this_o custom_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o cyprian_a aught_o to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v its_o original_n 23._o from_o their_o tradition_n as_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n observe_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v with_o good_a right_n believe_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n although_o they_o have_v not_o be_v write_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o to_o obtain_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a it_o suffice_v not_o to_o hold_v or_o rather_o to_o suppose_v to_o hold_v the_o same_o belief_n that_o the_o father_n hold_v unless_o they_o communicate_v with_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n wherewith_o the_o father_n do_v communicate_v and_o which_o by_o succession_n of_o person_n and_o as_o we_o pretend_v of_o doctrine_n be_v derive_v down_o to_o we_o and_o if_o she_o have_v lose_v any_o thing_n of_o her_o extent_n in_o our_o hemisphere_n she_o recover_v as_o much_o and_o more_o daily_o in_o the_o other_o hemisphere_n that_o these_o prophecy_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 26._o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v 3_o in_o the_o last_o day_n the_o mountain_n of_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o mountain_n and_o shall_v be_v exalt_v above_o all_o the_o high_a 2._o hill_n and_o all_o nation_n shall_v come_v up_o to_o she_o 14._o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n must_v be_v preach_v over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o then_o the_o end_n shall_v come_v and_o such_o like_a in_o right_a unit_fw-la whereof_o the_o church_n as_o say_v s._n augustin_n have_v obtain_v the_o title_n and_o the_o alibi_fw-la mark_n of_o catholic_a the_o second_o observation_n be_v upon_o the_o restriction_n in_o case_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o beside_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n there_o be_v two_o other_o degree_n of_o thing_n the_o one_o sort_n profitable_a to_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o your_o own_o minister_n to_o sell_v all_o our_o good_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o poor_a to_o fast_o in_o affliction_n to_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o pray_v our_o brother_n in_o the_o faith_n to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o the_o other_o sort_n lawful_a and_o not_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n as_o to_o fly_v from_o persecution_n to_o live_v by_o the_o altar_n since_o we_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n to_o put_v away_o our_o wife_n for_o adultery_n and_o other_o the_o like_a for_o i_o allege_v these_o for_o example_n and_o not_o for_o instance_n now_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o be_v comformable_a to_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o father_n to_o believe_v all_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v believe_v according_a to_o that_o degree_n wherein_o they_o have_v believe_v they_o to_o wit_n to_o believe_v for_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n those_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v esteem_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o salvation_n and_o for_o thing_n profitable_a to_o salvation_n those_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v esteem_v to_o be_v profitable_a to_o salvation_n and_o for_o thing_n lawful_a and_o not_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n those_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v hold_v to_o be_v lawful_a and_o not_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n and_o not_o under_o colour_n that_o the_o two_o last_o kind_n be_v not_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o only_o profitable_a or_o lawful_a to_o condemn_v they_o and_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o for_o their_o occasion_n from_o the_o church_n which_o then_o have_v they_o in_o practice_n and_o still_o practise_v they_o to_o this_o day_n the_o three_o observation_n be_v upon_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o because_o of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o necessity_n which_o have_v place_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v capable_a of_o diverse_a sense_n for_o there_o be_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o a_o conditional_a necessity_n a_o necessity_n of_o mean_n and_o a_o necessity_n of_o precept_n a_o necessity_n of_o special_a belief_n and_o a_o necessity_n of_o general_a belief_n a_o necessity_n of_o act_n and_o a_o necessity_n of_o approbatio_fw-la i_o call_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n not_o simple_o but_o by_o virtue_n of_o god_n institution_n that_o which_o receive_v no_o excuse_n of_o impossibility_n nor_o any_o exception_n of_o place_n time_n or_o person_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o be_v of_o age_n capable_a of_o knowledge_n the_o belief_n in_o christ_n mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n for_o neither_o the_o circumstance_n of_o be_v in_o a_o place_n where_o we_o can_v be_v instruct_v in_o that_o article_n nor_o the_o prevention_n of_o time_n in_o die_v before_o we_o be_v inform_v thereof_o nor_o the_o condition_n of_o be_v a_o ignorant_a person_n unlearned_a dull_v not_o apt_a to_o comprehend_v a_o sheep_n and_o not_o a_o shepherd_n can_v warrant_v those_o from_o damnation_n that_o believe_v it_o not_o actual_o for_o as_o much_o as_o who_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o only_o sonn_n of_o god_n be_v already_o judge_v and_o in_o regard_n of_o little_a child_n baptism_n only_o according_a to_o our_o doctrine_n may_v supply_v the_o defect_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n in_o their_o behalf_n agree_v with_o that_o sentence_n of_o s._n augustin_n do_v not_o believe_v do_v not_o say_v do_v not_o teach_v if_o thou_o will_v be_v a_o catholic_n that_o little_a child_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o death_n from_o be_v
essential_a form_n do_v show_v it_o to_o the_o understand_v the_o mark_n design_v the_o thing_n in_o the_o existence_n the_o essential_a form_n design_v it_o in_o the_o offence_n the_o mark_n teach_v where_o the_o thing_n be_v and_o the_o essential_a form_n teach_v what_o it_o be_v the_o mark_n be_v soon_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n and_o contrariwise_o the_o thing_n be_v soon_o know_v than_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o the_o thing_n define_v as_o aristotle_n say_v 1._o preceede_v in_o knowledge_n the_o definition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o whole_a be_v know_v before_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o thing_n into_o his_o essential_a part_n and_o therefore_o to_o say_v that_o the_o eminency_n of_o the_o communion_n be_v not_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n hinder_v it_o not_o from_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o mark_n likewise_o not_o only_o great_o necessary_a but_o absolute_o necessary_a 〈◊〉_d she_o have_v say_v saint_n augustine_n this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v she_o be_v then_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n therefore_o that_o be_v not_o she_o again_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v the_o essential_a form_n or_o belong_v to_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n make_v not_o that_o 〈◊〉_d it_o shall_v be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o mark_n must_v have_v three_o condition_n the_o first_o be_v to_o be_v more_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n since_o it_o be_v it_o that_o make_v the_o thing_n know_v the_o second_o that_o the_o thing_n never_o be_v find_v without_o it_o and_o the_o three_o as_o we_o have_v say_v elsewhere_o 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o be_v never_o find_v either_o alone_a if_o it_o be_v a_o total_a mark_n or_o with_o its_o fellow_n if_o it_o be_v a_o mark_n in_o part_n without_o the_o thing_n now_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n in_o all_o instance_n thereof_o be_v much_o hard_a to_o be_v know_v than_o the_o society_n of_o the_o church_n i_o say_v in_o all_o instance_n thereof_o because_o to_o know_v the_o right_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n in_o one_o particular_a question_n with_o one_o or_o other_o sect_n suffice_v not_o to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o the_o doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o particularity_n contest_v by_o heresy_n as_o well_o past_a as_o present_v before_o we_o can_v 〈◊〉_d by_o virtue_n of_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n where_o the_o true_a church_n be_v for_o there_o need_v no_o more_o but_o that_o she_o go_v wrong_v in_o any_o one_o controversy_n to_o make_v she_o fall_v from_o the_o title_n of_o the_o true_a church_n now_o who_o be_v he_o that_o can_v vaunt_v to_o know_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o instance_n and_o to_o have_v make_v the_o examination_n against_o every_o one_o of_o the_o other_o society_n by_o infallible_a and_o insoluble_a proof_n to_o all_o their_o answer_n and_o by_o invincible_a and_o irrefutable_a answer_n to_o all_o their_o objection_n and_o if_o any_o can_v do_v this_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o simple_a people_n and_o ignorant_a and_o rustical_a person_n of_o who_o salvation_n nevertheless_o god_n have_v the_o same_o care_n that_o he_o have_v of_o the_o learned_a and_o to_o who_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v equal_o common_a since_o they_o be_v equal_o oblige_v to_o obey_v she_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o this_o examination_n 4._o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n say_v saint_n augustine_n it_o be_v not_o the_o quickness_n of_o understand_v but_o the_o simplicity_n of_o belief_n that_o secure_v they_o and_o by_o consequent_a who_o see_v not_o that_o they_o must_v have_v other_o mark_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o then_o that_o of_o her_o doctrine_n to_o wit_n mark_n proportionable_a to_o their_o capacity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n as_o 〈◊〉_d antiquity_n perpetuity_n and_o such_o like_a even_o as_o child_n and_o ignorant_a person_n must_v have_v external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n and_o other_o than_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o a_o man_n to_o know_v and_o discern_v a_o man_n from_o other_o live_a creature_n 〈◊〉_d by_o what_o manifest_a mark_n cry_n out_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o catechumenist_n by_o what_o demonstration_n shall_v i_o that_o be_o yet_o little_a and_o weak_a and_o can_v discern_v the_o pure_a truth_n from_o the_o many_o error_n know_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o which_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o believe_v by_o the_o event_n of_o so_o many_o thing_n heretofore_o presage_v for_o these_o cause_n say_v he_o the_o prophet_n go_v forward_o and_o as_o it_o be_v collect_v methodical_o the_o motion_n of_o that_o spirit_n say_v that_o she_o be_v foretell_v to_o be_v that_o church_n which_o be_v eminent_a and_o apparent_a to_o all_o and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o also_o because_o of_o the_o motion_n of_o these_o little_a one_o who_o may_v be_v seduce_v and_o divert_v by_o man_n from_o the_o brightness_n of_o of_o the_o church_n our_o lord_n go_v before_o they_o say_v the_o city_n 5._o build_v upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v and_o indeed_o how_o be_v it_o that_o esaie_n shall_v prophesy_v that_o 2._o in_o the_o last_o day_n the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v on_o the_o top_n of_o all_o the_o mountain_n and_o that_o all_o the_o hill_n shall_v flow_v to_o she_o and_o that_o the_o nation_n shall_v come_v and_o say_v let_v we_o go_v up_o into_o the_o mountain_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o he_o will_v 〈◊〉_d we_o his_o way_n if_o the_o only_a mark_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o especial_a knowledge_n of_o his_o way_n and_o how_o shall_v saint_n paul_n say_v 〈◊〉_d god_n have_v place_v in_o the_o church_n apostles_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o little_a child_n blow_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n if_o he_o have_v not_o give_v we_o other_o mark_n to_o know_v the_o church_n than_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n beside_o suppose_v the_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n it_o must_v be_v either_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v between_o the_o party_n that_o pretend_v the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o doctrine_n not_o contest_v now_o it_o can_v be_v the_o doctrine_n not_o contest_v because_o both_o side_n have_v it_o and_o less_o yet_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v for_o while_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v contest_v it_o remain_v undecided_a of_o which_o side_n it_o be_v and_o the_o certain_a and_o assure_a decision_n can_v be_v make_v but_o by_o the_o church_n by_o which_o mean_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o during_o the_o contestation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n there_o must_v be_v other_o mark_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o which_o be_v acknowledge_v the_o question_n of_o the_o doctrine_n may_v be_v decide_v and_o you_o can_v say_v that_o the_o contest_v doctrine_n can_v be_v decide_v by_o scripture_n only_o for_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v matter_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v not_o any_o way_n touch_v by_o the_o scripture_n ans_fw-fr that_o whereof_o saint_n august_n speak_v do._n the_o apostle_n in_o truth_n have_v prescribe_v nothing_o of_o that_o but_o this_o custom_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o cyprian_a ought_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v its_o original_n 23._o from_o their_o tradition_n saint_n jerome_n protest_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o scripture_n consist_v not_o in_o the_o read_n but_o in_o the_o understanding_n and_o 3._o that_o by_o a_o wrong_a interpretation_n the_o gospel_n of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v the_o gospel_n of_o a_o man_n nay_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o devil_n wherefore_o to_o judge_v sure_o of_o the_o doctrine_n by_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v first_o assure_v of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o by_o a_o infallible_a mean_n for_o all_o the_o conclusion_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o term_n express_v and_o incapable_a of_o ambiguity_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o be_v draw_v by_o interpretation_n to_o make_v they_o conclusion_n of_o faith_n and_o decision_n infallible_a and_o equal_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o principle_n must_v be_v draw_v from_o it_o by_o a_o infallible_a means_n now_o there_o be_v but_o three_o way_n whereby_o we_o may_v pretend_v to_o be_v assure_v that_o a_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o
the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v infallible_a and_o necessary_o agreeable_a to_o its_o principle_n to_o wit_n either_o human_a discourse_n or_o private_a inspiration_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o external_a mean_v interpose_v from_o god_n between_o the_o scripture_n and_o we_o as_o the_o magistrate_n between_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o people_n to_o interpret_v to_o we_o the_o word_n to_o gather_v the_o sense_n and_o to_o sorme_v and_o propound_v the_o conclusion_n for_o to_o say_v that_o one_o passage_n of_o scripture_n shall_v be_v interpret_v by_o a_o other_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v diverse_a singular_a text_n wherein_o this_o pretention_n can_v have_v no_o place_n this_o be_v still_o to_o return_v to_o the_o same_o difficulty_n because_o one_o will_v have_v the_o controverted_a place_n interpret_v by_o one_o passage_n and_o the_o other_o will_v have_v it_o interpret_v by_o a_o other_o and_o the_o very_a sense_n of_o the_o passage_n which_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o clear_v the_o controverted_a place_n will_v again_o be_v bring_v into_o dispute_n and_o can_v be_v infallible_o decide_v but_o by_o a_o infallible_a means_n which_o must_v necessary_o be_v one_o of_o these_o three_o to_o wit_n either_o humane_a discourse_n or_o private_a inspiration_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o external_a judge_n and_o from_o this_o the_o verse_n of_o nehemias_n derogate_v not_o which_o be_v accord_v to_o the_o impression_n of_o geneva_n and_o they_o interpret_v the_o law_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o must_v be_v read_v with_o saint_n jerome_n they_o whilst_o it_o be_v read_v understand_v it_o the_o word_n mikra_fw-mi never_o have_v bone_n employ_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o signify_v scripture_n but_o only_o in_o the_o rabine_n 〈◊〉_d as_o rabbi_n elias_n and_o 〈◊〉_d munster_n 〈◊〉_d and_o we_o after_o they_o have_v other_o where_o demonstrate_v now_o as_o for_o humane_a discourse_n if_o in_o the_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o principle_n which_o be_v know_v and_o understand_v natural_o as_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o natural_a philosophy_n and_o metaphysic_n it_o be_v subject_a to_o commit_v so_o many_o error_n what_o shall_v it_o do_v in_o that_o who_o principle_n be_v not_o know_v and_o understand_v but_o by_o a_o supernatural_a light_n david_n say_v to_o god_n 118._o enlighten_v my_o eye_n and_o i_o will_v consider_v the_o marvel_n of_o thy_o law_n and_o thereupon_o saint_n jerome_n cry_v out_o 〈◊〉_d if_o so_o great_a a_o prophet_n confess_v the_o darkness_n of_o his_o ignorance_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o we_o little_a babe_n and_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o very_a same_o authority_n either_o mediate_a or_o immediate_a of_o he_o that_o reveal_v they_o 〈◊〉_d jesus_n say_v saint_n luke_n open_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o disciple_n and_o saint_n john_n 〈◊〉_d the_o lamb_n be_v find_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n and_o the_o eunuch_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o ethiopia_n be_v demand_v by_o s._n philip_n whether_o he_o understand_v what_o he_o read_v 8_o how_o shall_v i_o understand_v say_v he_o here_o be_v none_o to_o 〈◊〉_d it_o to_o i_o and_o saint_n peter_n 1_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o private_a interpretation_n and_o again_o 3_o there_o be_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o our_o brother_n paul_n thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v that_o ignorant_a and_o light-minded_n man_n 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n mark_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o perdition_n and_o not_o only_o ignorant_a and_o light-minded_n man_n too_o glorious_a peter_n but_o even_o the_o learned_a and_o most_o learned_a for_o who_o where_o ever_o more_o learned_a than_o those_o who_o fall_v s._n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n do_v propound_v for_o example_n of_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o faithful_a what_o tertullian_n of_o who_o he_o say_v 24_o as_o many_o word_n so_o many_o sentence_n as_o many_o sentence_n so_o many_o victory_n what_o origen_n of_o who_o he_o write_v 23._o what_o christian_n do_v not_o honour_v he_o as_o a_o prophet_n philosopher_n do_v not_o reverence_v he_o as_o a_o master_n what_o apollinarius_n of_o who_o he_o cry_v out_o 16._o what_o spirit_n do_v ever_o surmount_v he_o in_o subtility_n excercise_n and_o doctrine_n if_o so_o many_o great_a and_o admirable_a personage_n eminent_a in_o piety_n and_o incomparable_a in_o all_o kind_n of_o science_n tertulians_n origen_n appollinares_n assoon_o as_o they_o have_v withdraw_v the_o reins_n of_o their_o spirit_n from_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n to_o put_v they_o to_o the_o guidance_n of_o their_o particular_a discourse_n be_v fall_v into_o so_o deep_a and_o fearful_a precipice_n and_o pit_n of_o heresy_n who_o shall_v dare_v to_o assure_v himself_o upon_o his_o own_o particular_a sense_n concern_v the_o true_a and_o infallible_a under_o stand_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o in_o all_o the_o controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o any_o one_o of_o which_o to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o make_v a_o sect_n be_v to_o fall_v from_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o loose_a salvation_n in_o all_o but_o why_o shall_v we_o have_v recourse_n to_o argument_n where_o experience_n speak_v for_o as_o natural_o all_o man_n agree_v in_o confess_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o mathematics_n because_o in_o that_o kind_n of_o science_n humane_a discourse_n be_v infallible_a so_o if_o in_o the_o consequence_n which_o be_v draw_v by_o interpretation_n from_o scripture_n humane_a discourse_n be_v a_o infallible_a mean_n all_o man_n will_v natural_o agree_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o scripture_n now_o how_o far_o they_o be_v from_o that_o the_o only_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o this_o age_n do_v manifest_a wherein_o the_o lutheran_n the_o caluiniste_n the_o simple_a ana_n baptist_n the_o seruetian_o or_o new_a arrian_n which_o all_o profess_v to_o tie_v themselves_o to_o the_o scripture_n can_v by_o the_o scripture_n agree_v in_o any_o one_o of_o their_o question_n and_o do_v no_o more_o accord_n one_o with_o a_o other_o then_o if_o they_o have_v bear_v away_o the_o laurel_n from_o the_o tomb_n of_o bibrias_fw-la and_o as_o for_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o particular_a spirit_n beside_o the_o danger_n of_o those_o strong_a imagination_n that_o saint_n august_n call_v prol_n proud_a and_o perilous_a temptation_n which_o may_v be_v mistake_v for_o inspiration_n and_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o mean_n whereby_o the_o contention_n about_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v decide_v shall_v be_v common_a either_o in_o deed_n or_o in_o right_a to_o both_o party_n contest_v where_o as_o the_o private_a inspiration_n that_o one_o of_o the_o party_n pretende_v be_v no_o common_a mean_n neither_o in_o deed_n nor_o in_o right_a to_o the_o other_o the_o scripture_n advertise_v we_o that_o 11._o the_o angel_n of_o satan_n transform_v himself_o into_o the_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o command_v we_o 4._o to_o examine_v the_o spirit_n and_o discern_v whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n now_o by_o what_o shall_v the_o spirit_n be_v examine_v to_o try_v whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n if_o by_o the_o church_n then_o we_o must_v first_o know_v the_o church_n if_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v first_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o to_o examine_v they_o by_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o examine_v they_o by_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o by_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o particular_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o we_o must_v learn_v what_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o te_fw-fr scripture_n be_v since_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v from_o the_o scripture_n true_o interpret_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o learn_v whether_o the_o spirit_n that_o inspire_v we_o be_v the_o true_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o then_o these_o advertisement_n of_o saint_n peter_n 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o private_a interpretation_n 25._o and_o of_o saint_n augusrine_n hold_v not_o private_n truth_n lest_o you_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o truth_n exclude_v as_o well_o the_o refuge_n of_o particular_a inspiration_n as_o the_o certainty_n of_o humane_a discourse_n now_o if_o neither_o humane_a discourse_n nor_o private_a inspiration_n be_v infallible_a mean_n to_o assure_v a_o particular_a man_n of_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n in_o every_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o he_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o a_o external_a mean_n interpose_v from_o god_n between_o the_o scripture_n and_o we_o as_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n between_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o people_n to_o draw_v out_o to_o form_n and_o to_o propound_v the_o decision_n for_o we_o what_o can_v this_o mean_n be_v but_o
that_o where_o of_o god_n say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o isaiah_n 54._o thou_o shall_v judge_v every_o tongue_n that_o shall_v resist_v thou_o in_o judgement_n and_o by_o his_o own_o 18_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_fw-mi not_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o again_o ibid._n let_v he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publica_fw-la and_o by_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n 4._o god_n have_v place_v in_o the_o church_n apostles_n prophet_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n that_o we_o may_v no_o long_o 〈◊〉_d little_a child_n waveringe_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o again_o the_o church_n 2._o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o trutb_n do_v not_o 9_o ruffinus_n write_v that_o saint_n basile_n and_o saint_n gregory_n nazianzen_n take_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o from_o their_o own_o sense_n but_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n cry_v out_o 57_o within_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o dwellinge_a of_o truth_n and_o again_o cb_n all_o the_o fullness_n of_o authority_n and_o all_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n for_o reparation_n of_o human_a kind_n consist_v in_o the_o only_a healthful_a name_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o only_a church_n and_o do_v not_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n say_v 〈◊〉_d because_o all_o understand_v not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o depth_n thereof_o in_o one_o sense_n but_o one_o interpret_v it_o in_o one_o fashion_n a_o other_o in_o a_o other_o so_o that_o it_o seem_v there_o may_v be_v as_o many_o sever_v all_o opinion_n draw_v out_o of_o it_o as_o there_o be_v sever_v all_o man_n for_o novatian_n expound_v it_o one_o way_n photinus_n another_o way_n sabellius_n a_o other_o donatus_n a_o other_o arrius_n eunomius_n macedonius_n a_o other_o apollinaris_n priscillianus_n a_o other_o jovinian_a pelagius_n caelestius_n and_o final_o nestorius_n a_o other_o for_o these_o cause_v it_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o avoid_v the_o peril_n as_o so_o many_o great_a labyrinth_n of_o so_o diverse_a error_n that_o the_o line_n of_o the_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a interpretation_n shall_v be_v draw_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_a sense_n and_o háue_v not_o the_o minister_n of_o geneva_n themselves_o note_v this_o in_o the_o margin_n of_o their_o last_o bibles_n 2._o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n require_v a_o domestical_a and_o particular_a instruction_n namely_o in_o those_o that_o be_v ordain_v to_o deliver_v it_o into_o the_o church_n lest_o they_o shall_v take_v it_o in_o their_o own_o particular_a sense_n under_o colour_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v it_o that_o be_v ancient_o call_v tradition_n in_o the_o church_n now_o if_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o very_a geneva_n bibles_n not_o from_o the_o sense_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n but_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o under_o stand_a of_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a certain_a and_o infallible_a mark_n to_o discern_v and_o know_v the_o church_n but_o against_o these_o proof_n the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n propound_v objection_n which_o we_o have_v best_o confute_v before_o we_o proceed_v to_o a_o other_o article_n the_o first_o objection_n be_v that_o saint_n austin_n in_o his_o write_n against_o the_o manichee_n after_o he_o have_v make_v a_o long_o list_v of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n add_v this_o 4._o among_o you_o where_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v find_v as_o hold_n and_o tie_v i_o there_o sound_n only_o a_o promise_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_o demonstrate_v as_o none_o can_v call_v it_o in_o question_n aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o thing_n whereby_o i_o be_o retain_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o from_o hence_o they_o conclude_v that_o s._n augustine_n hold_v not_o the_o other_o mark_n for_o necessary_a and_o infallible_a but_o only_o for_o probable_a and_o conjectural_a since_o he_o offer_v to_o depart_v from_o they_o if_o they_o can_v demonstrate_v to_o he_o undoubted_o that_o the_o truth_n be_v of_o the_o other_o side_n to_o this_o i_o make_v two_o answer_n one_o that_o the_o truth_n whereof_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v make_v nothing_o for_o their_o purpose_n that_o allege_v it_o for_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v not_o there_o of_o the_o truth_n demonstrate_v by_o scripture_n which_o be_v that_o whereof_o the_o protestant_n vaunt_n but_o of_o the_o truth_n demonstrate_v by_o the_o light_n of_o naturalle_a reason_n which_o be_v that_o that_o the_o manichee_n promise_v as_o it_o appear_v by_o what_o he_o say_v three_o line_n below_o 5._o i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o move_v i_o to_o it_o and_o a_o little_a after_o ibid._n and_o therefore_o if_o thou_o must_v yield_v i_o a_o reason_n set_v aside_o the_o gospel_n if_o thou_o will_v tie_v thy-self_n to_o the_o gospel_n i_o will_v tie_v myself_o to_o those_o by_o who_o i_o have_v beleve_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o again_o ibid._n the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholics_n be_v destroy_v i_o can_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n because_o it_o be_v by_o they_o that_o i_o have_v believe_v it_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 6._o that_o which_o remain_v for_o you_o be_v to_o say_v that_o you_o will_v produce_v areason_n so_o certain_a and_o invincible_a as_o the_o truth_n thereof_o be_v manifest_v by_o itself_o it_o shall_v have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o witness_n nor_o of_o the_o verity_n virtue_n you_o must_v read_v of_o any_o miracle_n the_o other_o answer_n be_v that_o saint_n augustine_n do_v not_o propound_v this_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o possible_a condition_n for_o contrariwise_o he_o dispute_v of_o deliberate_a purpose_n against_o the_o manichee_n that_o the_o natural_a light_n of_o reason_n can_v not_o be_v the_o way_n to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n but_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o impossible_a condition_n and_o which_o consequent_o diminish_v nothing_o from_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o what_o he_o add_v immediate_o after_o 4._o but_o if_o it_o be_v only_o promise_v and_o not_o exhibit_v none_o shall_v separate_v i_o from_o this_o faith_n which_o by_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a bond_n so_o call_v he_o the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n bind_v my_o spirit_n to_o the_o christian_a religion_n the_o second_o objection_n that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n oppose_v be_v that_o the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n that_o the_o father_n assign_v to_o the_o church_n as_o antiquity_n perpetuity_n eminency_n and_o succession_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o church_n only_o for_o as_o much_o as_o many_o other_o thing_n may_v claim_v antiquity_n as_o the_o sun_n the_o sea_n the_o mountain_n and_o many_o other_o succession_n as_o the_o spring_n the_o brook_n the_o river_n and_o many_o other_o universality_n as_o the_o air_n the_o earth_n and_o the_o other_o element_n and_o even_o amoug_v religion_n that_o of_o the_o pagan_n have_v heretofore_o have_v eminency_n and_o universality_n and_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n have_v still_o antiquity_n and_o perpetuity_n certain_o a_o childish_a and_o ridiculous_a objection_n for_o first_o the_o mark_n that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n have_v not_o be_v impose_v upon_o she_o to_o distinguish_v she_o from_o all_o kind_n of_o thing_n but_o to_o distinguish_v she_o only_o from_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v contain_v though_o equivocal_o under_o the_o same_o next_o kind_n and_o may_v be_v suppose_v and_o take_v for_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o other_o christian_a society_n to_o wit_n from_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n which_o challenge_n and_o pretend_v by_o false_a mark_n the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n no_o more_o than_o the_o mark_n that_o golodmithe_n give_v to_o gold_n that_o it_o will_v not_o evaporate_v in_o the_o fire_n and_o that_o it_o will_v resist_v the_o coupelle_fw-fr and_o the_o water_n of_o separation_n be_v not_o give_v it_o to_o discern_v it_o from_o all_o kind_n of_o body_n for_o there_o be_v other_o body_n to_o which_o these_o condition_n arc_n common_a as_o glass_n and_o diamond_n but_o to_o discern_v it_o from_o false_a gold_n that_o be_v from_o metal_n make_v and_o sophisticated_a that_o may_v be_v suppose_v and_o make_v to_o pass_v for_o gold_n and_o this_o alsoe_o saint_n augustine_n esteem_v the_o church_n will_v insinuate_v in_o the_o canticle_n where_o after_o she_o have_v demand_v of_o her_o
spouse_n mark_n of_o the_o place_n where_o he_o dwell_v she_o say_v lest_o i_o be_v as_o hidden_a amoug_v the_o flock_n of_o thy_o competitor_n 14._o that_o be_v to_o say_v say_v saint_n augustine_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o begin_v with_o thou_o will_v assemble_v without_o not_o thy_o flock_n but_o their_o stock_n for_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n demand_v mark_n of_o her_o spouse_n not_o to_o be_v discern_v from_o all_o kind_n of_o thing_n but_o to_o be_v discern_v only_o from_o the_o society_n of_o heretic_n which_o bear_v by_o false_a mark_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o title_n of_o church_n and_o second_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o mark_n in_o part_n that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o that_o take_v separatlie_o have_v not_o the_o entire_a office_n of_o mark_n may_v not_o be_v find_v every_o one_o a_o part_n without_o the_o thing_n mark_v but_o that_o the_o thing_n may_v not_o be_v find_v without_o every_o one_o of_o they_o nor_o they_o take_v joint_o and_o altogether_o without_o the_o thing_n who_o mark_n they_o be_v and_o therefore_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o mark_n in_o part_n separate_v be_v good_a to_o argue_v negative_o and_o to_o say_v with_o saint_n austin_n against_o the_o donatist_n 104._o the_o church_n have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v she_o be_v then_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n then_o that_o be_v not_o she_o or_o with_o saint_n jerom_n against_o the_o luciferian_o lucif_n hilarius_n be_v dead_a a_o deacon_n he_o can_v ordain_v no_o priest_n after_o he_o now_o that_o be_v no_o church_n that_o have_v no_o priest_n or_o with_o the_o same_o saint_n augustine_n against_o all_o heresy_n in_o general_a 4._o every_o heresy_n that_o sit_v in_o corner_n be_v a_o concubine_n and_o no_o matron_n but_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o mark_n in_o part_n take_v joint_o be_v good_a to_o argue_v both_o negative_o and_o affirmative_o and_o to_o conclude_v with_o saint_n augustine_n 4._o suppose_v then_o that_o i_o omit_v this_o wisdom_n that_o you_o deny_v to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n that_o retain_v i_o most_o justly_o in_o her_o lap_n the_o consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n retain_v i_o the_o authority_n begin_v by_o miracle_n nourish_v by_o hope_n increase_v by_o charity_n confirm_v by_o antiquity_n retain_v i_o the_o succession_n of_o prelate_n since_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n to_o who_o or_o lord_n consign_v the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n after_o his_o resurrection_n to_o the_o present_a bishop_n sea_n retain_v i_o and_o final_o the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_a retain_v i_o which_o not_o without_o cause_n this_o church_n alone_o among_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a heresy_n have_v so_o maintain_v as_o when_o a_o stranger_n ask_v where_o they_o assemble_v to_o comunicate_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o heretic_n than_o dare_v show_v he_o his_o own_o temple_n or_o his_o own_o house_n from_o what_o place_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v chapter_n vi._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n the_o king_n have_v learn_v from_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o all_o the_o father_n heretofore_o none_o except_v hold_v no_o otherwise_o that_o the_o true_a and_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n do_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o pastor_n the_o reply_n to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o sheep_n but_o not_o the_o essential_a form_n either_o of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o sheep_n for_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v essential_a form_n analogical_o as_o that_o of_o the_o suppost_n constitute_v by_o aggregation_n be_v unity_n in_o the_o mean_n of_o vocation_n to_o salvation_n and_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v the_o communion_n and_o participation_n to_o this_o unity_n ●_o the_o name_n of_o church_n say_v saint_n chrisostom_n be_v a_o name_n of_o agreement_n and_o union_n and_o saint_n augustine_n 100_o god_n be_v one_o the_o church_n be_v unity_n nothing_o agree_v with_o this_o one_o '_o but_o unity_n but_o if_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n do_v not_o he_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n that_o hear_v her_o voice_n of_o who_o the_o pastor_n say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o isaiah_n 14._o thou_o shall_v judge_v every_o tongue_n that_o resist_v thou_o in_o judgement_n and_o by_o his_o own_o mouth_n 16._o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o 18_o whosoever_o hear_v she_o not_o shall_v be_v hold_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n and_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o saint_n paul_n 4._o he_o have_v place_v in_o the_o church_n apostles_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n that_o we_o may_v no_o more_o be_v little_a child_n fleet_a and_o waver_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n cry_v out_o 〈◊〉_d the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n be_v hold_v by_o we_o when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o please_v the_o universal_a church_n who_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n recommend_v and_o again_o 23._o there_o be_v many_o thing_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n observe_v and_o which_o therefore_o be_v lawful_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n although_o we_o find_v they_o not_o write_v and_o then_o again_o to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v it_o not_o to_o hear_v it_o according_a to_o true_a understanding_n for_o do_v not_o tertullian_n pronounce_v prese_n a_o adulterate_a gloss_n do_v as_o much_o outrage_n to_o the_o truth_n as_o a_o false_a pen_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n hilary_n say_v 2._o the_o heresy_n be_v in_o the_o understanding_n and_o not_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o sense_n and_o not_o the_o word_n become_v the_o crime_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n jerome_n write_v 1._o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o sense_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n cty_n out_o 222._o all_o the_o heretic_n which_o receive_v the_o scripture_n think_v to_o follow_v they_o when_o they_o follow_v their_o own_o error_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 9_o heretic_n be_v no_o heretic_n but_o that_o misunderstand_v the_o scripture_n they_o defend_v obstinate_o their_o own_o false_a opinion_n against_o the_o truth_n thereof_o and_o again_o 9_o many_o thing_n be_v speak_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o the_o impion_n spirit_n of_o heretic_n who_o will_v needs_o teach_v before_o they_o be_v teach_v be_v thereby_o lead_v into_o error_n and_o upon_o saint_n john_n 18._o the_o heresy_n and_o perverse_a doctrine_n which_o entangle_v soul_n and_o cast_v they_o headlong_o into_o hell_n have_v their_o birth_n no_o where_o but_o from_o good_a scripture_n evil_o understand_v and_o so_o be_v not_o the_o question_n still_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o judge_v infallible_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n moreover_o the_o first_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n that_o the_o father_n summon_v the_o sheep_n to_o hear_v be_v it_o not_o that_o whereby_o he_o design_v the_o mark_n of_o his_o sheepefolde_a that_o be_v of_o his_o church_n 10._o i_o have_v say_v saint_n augustine_n the_o most_o manifest_a voice_n of_o my_o pastor_n who_o recommend_v and_o express_v to_o i_o his_o church_n without_o any_o ambigiutie_n i_o must_v blame_v myself_o if_o for_o the_o word_n of_o man_n i_o stray_v from_o his_o floke_n which_o be_v the_o church_n since_o principal_o he_o admonish_v i_o say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n now_o which_o be_v this_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n wherein_o saint_n augustine_n will_v have_v we_o seek_v for_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o which_o express_v not_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v between_o he_o and_o his_o adversary_n which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o baptism_n give_v by_o heretic_n but_o the_o prerogative_n of_o eminency_n perpetuity_n universality_n and_o other_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n and_o condition_n promise_v to_o the_o church_n 4_o if_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v saint_n augustine_n have_v design_v the_o 〈◊〉_d only_o in_o africa_n and_o in_o a_o little_a medley_n of_o man_n dwell_v in_o the_o rock_n and_o mountain_n near_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o house_n and_o territory_n of_o a_o spanish_a lady_n though_o whatsoever_o other_o pamphlet_n may_v be_v produce_v there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o donatist_n that_o have_v the_o church_n if_o the_o
scripture_n have_v bound_v she_o to_o a_o little_a number_n of_o moor_n of_o the_o cesarian_a province_n than_o we_o must_v go_v to_o the_o rogatist_n if_o to_o a_o little_a company_n of_o tripolitans_n byzacenians_n and_o provincials_n the_o maximianist_n have_v get_v she_o if_o only_o to_o those_o of_o the_o east_n we_o must_v seek_v she_o among_o the_o arrian_n macedonian_n eunomian_o and_o other_o if_o there_o be_v other_o to_o be_v find_v for_o who_o can_v number_v the_o particular_a heresy_n of_o every_o nation_n but_o if_o by_o the_o divine_a and_o most_o certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n she_o be_v design_v to_o be_v in_o all_o nation_n whatsoever_o be_v allege_v to_o we_o or_o from_o whence_o soever_o it_o be_v allege_v by_o those_o that_o say_v here_o be_v christ_n there_o be_v christ_n if_o we_o be_v sheep_n let_v we_o rather_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o shepherd_n who_o say_v believe_v they_o not_o for_o these_o be_v not_o tobe_v find_v in_o many_o place_n where_o she_o be_v and_o she_o who_o be_v every_o where_o be_v also_o wheresoever_o they_o be_v and_o again_o 20_o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o follow_v i_o you_o have_v hear_v his_o most_o manifest_a voice_n recommendinge_v his_o future_a church_n not_o only_o in_o the_o psalm_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n but_o by_o his_o own_o mouth_n alsoe_o and_o a_o little_a after_o ibidem_fw-la this_o be_v no_o obscure_a question_n and_o wherein_o they_o may_v deceive_v you_o of_o who_o our_o lord_n have_v foretell_v that_o they_o shall_v come_v and_o say_v lo_o here_o be_v christ_n behold_v he_o be_v tbere_fw-la lo_o he_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o the_o frequeneie_n of_o the_o multitud_n behold_v he_o here_o in_o the_o secret_a place_n that_o be_v in_o hide_a tradition_n and_o dark_a doctrine_n you_o hear_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v spread_v over_o all_o and_o grow_v to_o the_o harvest_n you_o have_v the_o city_n of_o which_o himself_o that_o build_v it_o say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n can_v be_v hide_v it_o be_v then_o she_o that_o be_v not_o in_o any_o single_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o be_v well_o know_v every_o where_o behold_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o saint_n augustine_n affirm_v to_o be_v design_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o so_o clear_o design_v as_o they_o need_v no_o interpreter_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o church_n be_v know_v by_o they_o we_o may_v after_o by_o the_o church_n be_v inform_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o other_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n which_o need_v interpretarion_n 16._o produce_v to_o we_o say_v he_o something_a for_o your_o cause_n which_o can_v be_v interpret_v more_o true_o against_o you_o nay_o which_o at_o all_o need_v no_o interpreter_n as_o these_o word_n in_o thy_o seed_n all_o nation_n shall_v be_v blessed_v need_v no_o interpreter_n 26._o 22._o as_o these_o word_n it_o behove_v that_o christ_n shall_v suffer_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n and_o that_o in_o his_o name_n there_o shall_v be_v preach_v penance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n through_o all_o nation_n begin_v from_o jerusalem_n have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n etc._n etc._n 24._o as_o these_o word_n and_o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v preach_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o testimony_n to_o all_o people_n and_o then_o the_o end_n shall_v come_v have_v no_o 13._o need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n as_o these_o word_n let_v both_o grow_v together_o till_o harvest_n have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n for_o when_o they_o have_v need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n our_o lord_n himself_o ineerprete_v they_o for_o even_o as_o when_o a_o testator_n ordain_v some_o one_o to_o interpret_v the_o difficulty_n of_o his_o testament_n and_o that_o the_o name_n o_o this_o interpreter_n be_v common_a and_o equivocal_a to_o many_o the_o testator_n assign_v mark_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v he_o know_v the_o clause_n whereby_o he_o design_v the_o mark_n to_o know_v he_o must_v be_v so_o clear_a as_o they_o shall_v need_v no_o interpreter_n since_o it_o be_v by_o they_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v know_v to_o who_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v address_v themselves_o to_o make_v they_o understand_v those_o thing_n that_o shall_v need_v interpretation_n so_o god_n have_v promise_v in_o his_o testament_n to_o give_v the_o interpretation_n of_o his_o testament_n to_o the_o church_n the_o word_n whereby_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o design_v must_v be_v so_o clear_a that_o they_o shall_v need_v no_o interpreter_n so_o that_o by_o they_o the_o church_n be_v know_v we_o may_v after_o by_o the_o church_n learn_v the_o understanding_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o need_v a_o interpreter_n and_o therefore_o the_o order_n and_o course_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v to_o verify_v by_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v not_o need_v of_o a_o interpreter_n the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n '_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n itself_o and_o by_o the_o church_n the_o understanding_n of_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v need_n of_o interpretation_n n_o this_o point_n say_v he_o we_o read_v it_o not_o plain_o 16._o and_o evident_o neither_o i_o nor_o thou_o but_o if_o there_o be_v beer_n some_o man_n endue_v with_o wisdom_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n himself_o have_v give_v testimony_n and_o that_o he_o be_v consult_v with_o by_o we_o about_o this_o question_n i_o believe_v we_o will_v nothing_o doubt_n to_o do_v as_o he_o will_v 〈◊〉_d we_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v judge_v repugnant_a not_o so_o much_o to_o he_o as_o to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o he_o be_v recommend_v now_o he_o give_v testimony_n to_o his_o church_n and_o elsewhere_o 〈◊〉_d whosoever_o then_o fear_v to_o be_v deceive_v through_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n let_v he_o consult_v with_o that_o church_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n bathe_v design_v without_o 〈◊〉_d ambiguity_n but_o this_o be_v when_o he_o dispute_v with_o the_o donatist_n who_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o when_o he_o dispute_v with_o the_o manichee_n or_o with_o the_o infidel_n which_o deny_v or_o question_v it_o then_o he_o change_v his_o method_n and_o do_v not_o prove_v to_o they_o the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n and_o to_o that_o end_n he_o use_v two_o kind_n of_o proceedinge_v 〈◊〉_d the_o one_o be_v to_o put_v it_o for_o a_o ground_n that_o if_o god_n have_v care_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n as_o without_o this_o principle_n all_o discourse_n of_o religion_n be_v in_o vain_a there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n but_o he_o have_v appoint_v a_o mean_n how_o they_o may_v attain_v it_o and_o that_o this_o mean_v not_o consist_v in_o thing_n know_v by_o natural_a reason_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o natural_o all_o man_n will_v agree_v in_o it_o it_o be_v they_o of_o necessity_n that_o it_o shall_v consist_v in_o authority_n and_o then_o this_o ground_n benig_v lay_v to_o verify_v that_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o only_a catholic_a church_n have_v the_o true_a mark_n of_o authority_n alib_a the_o other_o proceedinge_v be_v to_o propose_v to_o they_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o profecy_n touch_v the_o extirpation_n of_o idol_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o false_a god_n of_o the_o pagans_n and_o touchinge_v the_o abolishment_n of_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n and_o the_o dispersinge_v of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o touchinge_v the_o comeinge_n of_o a_o new_a law_n maker_n and_o of_o a_o new_a religion_n and_o to_o represent_v to_o they_o that_o these_o prophecy_n be_v write_v before_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o keep_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v couch_v in_o term_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o the_o jew_n which_o keep_v they_o be_v not_o persuade_v by_o they_o but_o that_o within_o the_o same_o book_n it_o be_v foretell_v that_o theyshould_n be_v strike_v with_o blindness_n and_o that_o in_o seeinge_v they_o shall_v not_o see_v and_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o prove_v to_o they_o that_o these_o be_v sacred_a and_o inspire_v from_o god_n and_o then_o this_o obtain_v to_o show_v they_o in_o the_o same_o prophecy_n the_o mark_n whereby_o among_o so_o many_o society_n which_o shall_v usurp_v the_o title_n of_o christian_a society_n she_o be_v to_o be_v discern_v to_o who_o appertain_v the_o right_n of_o be_v the_o true_a common_a wealth_n of_o christ._n and_o she_o be_v final_o acknowledge_v to_o address_v they_o to_o
correct_v or_o explain_v it_o both_o in_o the_o conference_n that_o he_o have_v with_o they_o in_o carthage_n and_o in_o his_o retractation_n as_o there_o remain_v no_o more_o colour_n to_o abuse_v it_o for_o saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o first_o disputation_n against_o the_o donatist_n find_v himself_o press_v with_o the_o argument_n that_o they_o bring_v to_o prove_v that_o baptism_n can_v not_o be_v give_v by_o heretic_n because_o heretic_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n advise_v himself_o and_o particular_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o seven_o book_n of_o baptism_n from_o whence_o this_o distinction_n of_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n be_v principal_o take_v to_o help_v himself_o against_o they_o not_o with_o the_o formal_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o only_a infidel_n and_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a christian_n be_v exclude_v but_o by_o the_o final_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v according_a to_o the_o final_a and_o future_a number_n of_o those_o of_o who_o she_o shall_v be_v constitute_v in_o the_o other_o world_n from_o which_o wicked_a catholic_n be_v also_o exclude_v to_o the_o end_n to_o infer_v from_o thence_o against_o the_o donatist_n that_o as_o evil_a catholic_n though_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n define_v according_a to_o her_o future_a permanent_a and_o principal_a be_v do_v true_o baptise_v so_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n though_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n define_v according_a to_o her_o present_a and_o passant_a be_v yet_o may_v administer_v true_a baptism_n and_o for_o a_o foundation_n of_o his_o definition_n he_o make_v use_v of_o epithet_n of_o solomon_n and_o s._n paul_n have_v no_o spott_n nor_o wrinkle_n and_o 4._o 〈◊〉_d she_o such_o like_a eulogy_n of_o the_o church_n which_o appertain_v either_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d state_n of_o the_o other_o world_n or_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n but_o after_o that_o the_o donati_v abuse_v both_o this_o definition_n and_o the_o testimony_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v take_v to_o infer_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o catholic_a communion_n which_o be_v mingle_v with_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o the_o church_n he_o change_v his_o procede_v in_o the_o conference_n that_o he_o have_v with_o they_o at_o carthage_n and_o declare_v that_o this_o definition_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o church_n consider_v according_a to_o the_o present_a and_o formal_a be_v which_o she_o have_v in_o this_o world_n but_o accord_v to_o the_o future_a and_o final_a be_v which_o she_o shall_v have_v in_o the_o 3._o next_o the_o catholic_n say_v he_o make_v it_o appear_v by_o many_o testimony_n and_o example_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o wicked_a man_n be_v now_o so_o mingle_v in_o the_o church_n that_o although_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n ought_v to_o be_v watchful_a to_o correct_v they_o both_o in_o word_n and_o by_o excommunication_n and_o degradation_n nevertheless_o not_o only_o be_v hide_v they_o be_v unknown_a but_o even_o be_v know_v they_o be_v often_o tolerate_v for_o the_o unity_n of_o peace_n and_o show_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n do_v in_o that_o manner_n well_o agree_v together_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o place_n whereby_o the_o church_n be_v represent_v with_o the_o medley_n of_o the_o wicked_a signisie_n the_o present_a time_n of_o the_o church_n as_o she_o be_v in_o this_o world_n and_o the_o place_n whereby_o she_o be_v design_v to_o have_v no_o wicked_a person_n mix_v with_o she_o signify_v the_o future_a state_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o she_o shall_v eternal_o have_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o a_o little_a after_o so_o the_o catholic_n refute_v the_o calumny_n of_o the_o two_o church_n declare_v express_o and_o instant_o what_o they_o intend_v to_o say_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o have_v not_o pretend_v that_o that_o church_n which_o be_v now_o mingle_v with_o wicked_a man_n shall_v be_v a_o other_o church_n than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v have_v no_o wicked_a peson_n in_o it_o but_o that_o the_o same_o one_o and_o holy_a church_n be_v now_o in_o one_o sort_n and_o shall_v be_v then_o in_o a_o other_o now_o she_o be_v compound_v of_o good_a and_o wicked_a man_n and_o they_o she_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o and_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o city_n 9_o of_o god_n make_v by_o he_o after_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n there_o where_o the_o one_o and_o other_o kind_a be_v find_v that_o be_v good_a &_o evil_a there_o the_o church_n be_v as_o 〈◊〉_d be_v at_o this_o present_a but_o where_o the_o one_o only_o shall_v be_v there_o be_v the_o church_n such_o as_o she_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d when_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o wicked_a man_n in_o she_o and_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o second_o 〈◊〉_d epistle_n of_o gaudentias_n write_v also_o after_o the_o say_a conference_n you_o see_v that_o the_o church_n according_a to_o cyprian_n be_v call_v catholic_a by_o the_o name_n of_o all_o and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o manifestly-wicked_n man_n and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o retractation_n 18._o i_o write_v say_v he_o 7._o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n attempt_v to_o defend_v themselves_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o most_o happy_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n 〈◊〉_d in_o all_o those_o book_n where_o i_o have_v describe_v the_o church_n without_o wrinkle_n or_o spott_n it_o must_v not_o be_v take_v of_o the_o church_n as_o she_o in_o her_o present_a be_v but_o as_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d such_o when_o she_o shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n and_o again_o in_o my_o write_n to_o a_o unknowen_a donatist_n 〈◊〉_d speak_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o cockle_n i_o say_v by_o which_o be_v understand_v all_o heretic_n there_o want_v a_o conjunction_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o i_o shall_v have_v say_v by_o which_o be_v also_o understand_v all_o bereticke_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o i_o speak_v as_o if_o there_o be_v only_a cockle_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o none_o in_o the_o church_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n from_o whence_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o harvest_n time_n will_v pluck_v up_o all_o scandal_n which_o cause_v the_o martyr_n cyprian_n to_o say_v although_o we_o see_v tare_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o ought_v neither_o our_o faith_n nor_o our_o charity_n to_o be_v so_o divert_v as_o because_o we_o see_v tare_n in_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v therefore_o separate_v ourself_n from_o the_o church_n which_o sense_n we_o have_v also_o follow_v else_o where_o and_o principal_o against_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d present_a in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o conference_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v how_o much_o it_o be_v to_o abuse_v saint_n augustine_n word_n against_o the_o sense_n whereto_o himself_o intend_v they_o shall_v be_v either_o correct_v or_o explain_v to_o transferr_v as_o the_o protestants_n do_v that_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n consider_v according_a to_o her_o future_a and_o final_a be_v in_o the_o other_o world_n and_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o church_n consider_v accord_v to_o her_o actual_a be_v here_o and_o to_o infer_v from_o thence_o that_o she_o may_v consist_v in_o this_o world_n formal_o in_o the_o only_a number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a and_o remain_v hide_a and_o visible_a to_o the_o five_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o saint_n jerom_n write_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o church_n be_v glorion_n without_o spott_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o 5._o like_a thing_n he_o then_o which_o be_v a_o sinner_n and_o soil_v with_o any_o spott_n can_v be_v call_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n neither_o subject_n to_o christ_n we_o answer_v that_o he_o mean_v not_o to_o say_v that_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o fight_v here_o below_o but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o shall_v reign_v in_o heaven_n for_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o from_o saint_n jerom_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o promise_n to_o be_v without_o wrinkle_n or_o spott_n of_o manner_n appertain_v to_o the_o church_n consider_v as_o she_o be_v in_o this_o world_n that_o he_o cry_v out_o quite_o contrarilie_o against_o the_o pelagian_n that_o what_o the_o apostle_n write_v that_o our_o lord_n will_v make_v his_o church_n 3._o holy_a and_o without_o spott_n or_o wrinkle_n shall_v be_v accomplish_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o consummation_n of_o virtue_n and_o again_o true_a perfection_n and_o without_o soil_n be_v reserve_v for_o heaven_n when_o the_o bridegroom_n shall_v say_v to_o the_o bride_n thou_o be_v whole_o saire_fw-fr 31_o my_o
deceitful_a that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o speak_v not_o this_o language_n to_o show_v that_o when_o he_o write_v it_o there_o be_v then_o no_o external_a and_o visible_a church_n which_o must_v be_v communicate_v with_o under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n but_o contrariwise_o to_o show_v that_o they_o must_v continue_v to_o conserve_v the_o external_a and_o visible_a communion_n of_o that_o church_n impolluted_a and_o undefiled_a from_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o second_o place_n allege_v by_o his_o majesty_n he_o represente_v episc._n two_o combat_n that_o the_o good_a catholic_a pastor_n have_v in_o their_o charge_n some_o within_o the_o church_n against_o the_o jealousy_n &_o emulation_n of_o evil_n catholic_n other_o without_o the_o church_n against_o heretic_n &_o schismatickes_n and_o which_o heretic_n and_o not_o against_o the_o church_n entitle_v catholic_a he_o call_v the_o war_n sacred_a war_n in_o imitation_n of_o the_o phocensian_a war_n which_o be_v call_v sacred_a of_o the_o pretend_a precept_n to_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n xv._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n now_o that_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v once_o necessary_a to_o make_v such_o a_o separation_n we_o lerrne_v it_o clear_o as_o well_o out_o of_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o from_o that_o which_o be_v open_o declare_v to_o we_o by_o this_o admonition_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v to_o the_o church_n certain_o not_o without_o cause_n go_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n lest_o you_o communicate_v in_o her_o sin_n now_o what_o this_o babylon_n 18._o be_v from_o whence_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v command_v to_o go_v forth_o the_o king_n search_v not_o into_o it_o nor_o decide_v nothing_o in_o that_o respect_n this_o certain_o at_o least_o the_o thing_n itself_o show_v manifest_o that_o whether_o in_o that_o place_n by_o the_o word_n babylon_n be_v mean_v a_o particular_a church_n or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n it_o must_v be_v she_o have_v heretofore_o be_v a_o lawful_a church_n wherewith_o religious_a man_n communicate_v 〈◊〉_d and_o then_o from_o who_o after_o her_o depravation_n have_v yet_o past_o further_a the_o faithful_a receive_a commandment_n to_o go_v forth_o and_o to_o break_v the_o communion_n they_o have_v with_o she_o so_o as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o faithful_a ought_v not_o to_o desire_v all_o kind_n of_o communion_n with_o those_o which_o be_v call_v under_o the_o title_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v make_v retain_v still_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o doctrine_n reveal_v from_o heaven_n the_o reply_n it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n the_o first_o grecian_n call_v their_o allegorical_a sense_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v it_o that_o this_o word_n intend_v hide_v &_o conealed_a poet_n sense_n or_o whether_o it_o intend_v suspicion_n for_o all_o sense_n pure_o allegorical_a be_v but_o suspicion_n &_o conjecture_n &_o have_v no_o firm_a &_o solid_a foundation_n and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o hebrew_n doctor_n call_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o little_a word_n &_o the_o allegorical_a sense_n the_o great_a word_n for_o the_o literal_a sense_n be_v restrain_v by_o the_o square_a &_o straight_o measure_v of_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o text_n where_o as_o the_o allegorical_a sense_n have_v no_o bind_v but_o be_v multiply_v infinite_o &_o go_v as_o far_o as_o humane_a imaginatio_fw-la can_v be_v stretch_v and_o therefore_o this_o axiom_n be_v pass_v for_o a_o proverb_n in_o divinity_n that_o allegory_n prove_v nothing_o now_o if_o there_o be_v a_o book_n in_o the_o world_n paulin_n write_v in_o a_o allegorical_a stile_n what_o one_o can_v be_v equal_v in_o that_o kind_n to_o the_o revelation_n which_o as_o saint_n jerom_n say_v contain_v as_o many_o sacrament_n 48_o that_o be_v to_o say_v sacred_a riddle_n as_o word_n and_o if_o saint_n augustine_n cry_v out_o against_o the_o donatist_n who_o will_v have_v find_v a_o prediction_n of_o their_o church_n in_o a_o allegorical_a verse_n of_o the_o canticle_n and_o say_v to_o they_o who_o be_v it_o that_o dare_v without_o a_o most_o unbridled_a licence_n produce_v for_o himself_o that_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o allegory_n if_o he_o have_v not_o place_n more_o clear_a by_o who_o light_n to_o illustrate_v that_o which_o be_v obscure_a what_o will_v he_o say_v in_o this_o age_n not_o against_o his_o majesty_n but_o against_o the_o proceed_n of_o those_o that_o have_v build_v the_o vocation_n of_o their_o church_n upon_o these_o alegoricall_a word_n of_o the_o revelation_n go_v forth_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n who_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o solution_n sufficient_a for_o argument_n draw_v out_o of_o allegorical_a exposition_n to_o answer_v i_o deny_v it_o and_o principal_o when_o there_o may_v be_v a_o other_o sense_n give_v to_o the_o allegorical_a word_n then_o that_o according_a to_o which_o they_o be_v allege_v if_o i_o can_v not_o say_v saint_n augustine_n answer_v a_o allegorical_a objection_n prove_v this_o sense_n by_o any_o more_o certain_a argument_n yet_o it_o ought_v to_o satisfy_v every_o judicious_a bearer_n that_o i_o have_v find_v a_o issue_n for_o these_o word_n by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o have_v allege_v nothing_o for_o themselves_o that_o be_v certain_a but_o what_o may_v the_o doubt_v of_o and_o not_o only_o may_v there_o be_v find_v a_o other_o way_n of_o understand_v this_o passage_n then_o that_o which_o his_o majesty_n suppose_v but_o antiquity_n have_v find_v two_o other_o and_o both_o celebrate_v by_o excellent_a and_o authentical_a author_n and_o those_o which_o have_v come_v after_o have_v yet_o add_v a_o three_o the_o first_o way_n of_o understand_v it_o be_v to_o interpret_v babylon_n describe_v by_o the_o revelation_n to_o be_v the_o society_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a in_o general_a as_o s._n augustine_n and_o many_o other_o often_o expound_v it_o in_o that_o sense_n and_o to_o expound_v jerusalem_n describe_v in_o the_o same_o book_n to_o be_v the_o society_n of_o all_o the_o good_a which_o be_v the_o two_o city_n whereof_o saint_n augustine_n have_v compose_v a_o work_n of_o the_o city_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o begin_v in_o cain_n and_o the_o city_n of_o god_n which_o begin_v in_o abel_n for_o as_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n in_o thing_n contrary_a and_o opposite_a so_o must_v the_o interpretatio_fw-la of_o that_o jerusalem_n paint_v out_o in_o the_o revelation_n and_o that_o of_o that_o babylon_n which_o be_v oppose_v to_o it_o be_v a_o like_a mark_v say_v saint_n augustine_n the_o name_n of_o these_o two_o city_n babylon_n 64._o and_o jerusalem_n babylon_n signify_v confusion_n and_o jerusalem_n the_o view_n of_o peace_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v mingle_v from_o the_o begin_v of_o humane_a kind_n and_o shall_v continue_v so_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n jerusalem_n take_v her_o beginning_n from_o abel_n and_o babylon_n from_o cain_n and_o a_o little_a after_o from_o whence_o can_v we_o now_o show_v they_o that_o be_v discern_v they_o our_o lord_n will_v show_v to_o we_o when_o he_o place_v they_o the_o one_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n the_o other_o on_o his_o left_a jerusalem_n shall_v hear_v come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n take_v possession_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o beginminge_n of_o the_o world_n and_o babylon_n shall_v hear_v go_v you_o curse_v into_o eternal_a fire_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n yet_o we_o may_v also_o bring_v some_o mark_n accord_v to_o the_o capacity_n that_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v we_o by_o which_o the_o faithful_a and_o godly_a citizen_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o citizen_n of_o babylon_n two_o love_n make_v these_o two_o city_n the_o love_n of_o god_n make_v jerusalem_n the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n make_v babylon_n let_v every_o one_o then_o examine_v himself_o what_o he_o love_v and_o he_o shall_v find_v of_o which_o he_o be_v a_o citizen_n and_o in_o a_o 86._o other_o place_n all_o the_o wicked_a belong_v to_o babylon_n as_o all_o the_o saint_n do_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o the_o volume_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o what_o shall_v we_o gather_v from_o this_o 18._o but_o that_o we_o must_v fly_v out_o of_o the_o middle_n of_o babylon_n which_o prophetical_a precept_n ought_v spiritual_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o this_o sense_n that_o out_o of_o the_o city_n of_o this_o world_n which_o be_v without_o doubt_v the_o society_n of_o evil_a angel_n and_o wicked_a man_n we_o shall_v fly_v with_o the_o step_n of_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n and_o
catholic_a church_n saint_n august_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n answer_v they_o that_o the_o separation_n intend_v by_o that_o passage_n be_v the_o moral_a separation_n of_o faith_n and_o breach_n of_o communion_n it_o be_v say_v s._n august_n represent_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o 3._o separation_n of_o the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a in_o this_o world_n that_o they_o may_v not_o communicate_v in_o their_o sin_n to_o wit_n separation_n of_o hart_n by_o dissimilitude_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n and_o that_o otherwise_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o which_o be_v write_v go_v out_o from_o the_o middle_n of_o they_o and_o withdraw_v from_o they_o and_o touch_v not_o their_o uncle_n annesse_n that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v distinguish_v in_o live_v in_o a_o other_o sort_n and_o consent_v not_o to_o their_o uncleanness_n but_o the_o excellent_a king_n say_v that_o there_o be_v other_o place_n of_o scripture_n whereby_o be_v prove_v that_o which_o he_o pretende_v to_o gather_v from_o the_o allegorical_a word_n of_o the_o revelation_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n shall_v become_v so_o corrupt_a as_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o leave_v her_o communion_n now_o the_o objection_n that_o his_o majesty_n reserve_v for_o we_o in_o this_o regard_n be_v either_o take_v from_o this_o interrogatory_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o your_o opinion_n the_o 12._o son_n of_o man_n when_o he_o come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n upon_o the_o earth_n or_o from_o these_o word_n the_o moon_n shall_v not_o give_v we_o her_o light_n which_o s._n august_n interpretes_n of_o the_o church_n or_o from_o this_o prophecy_n of_o saint_n paul_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n shall_v be_v seat_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n or_o out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o the_o same_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n two_o wing_n of_o a_o great_a eagle_n be_v give_v to_o the_o woman_n that_o she_o may_v fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n or_o from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o pretend_a eclipse_n jew_n and_o sincope_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o therefore_o set_v aside_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o symptom_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n which_o we_o remit_v to_o treat_v of_o hereafter_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o we_o solve_v all_o the_o rest_n present_o to_o the_o first_o objection_n then_o which_o be_v to_o the_o interrogatory_n that_o our_o lord_n make_v to_o his_o disciple_n when_o he_o ask_v they_o in_o your_o opinion_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n on_o the_o earth_n we_o say_v saint_n jerom_n and_o s._n aug._n have_v answer_v it_o long_o ago_o the_o one_o against_o the_o luciferian_o and_o the_o other_o against_o the_o donatist_n and_o have_v show_v that_o this_o passage_n be_v intend_v not_o of_o confess_v and_o doctrinal_a faith_n but_o of_o iustifi_a faith_n work_v by_o charity_n and_o yet_o not_o of_o the_o extinction_n but_o of_o the_o diminution_n of_o this_o iustifi_a faith_n the_o donatist_n say_v saint_n aug._n allege_v that_o this_o 13._o that_o our_o lord_n ask_v in_o your_o opinion_n the_o son_n of_o man_n uhen_o he_o come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n upon_o the_o earth_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o the_o revolt_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n which_o we_o understand_v to_o be_v say_v either_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o perfection_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o oifficult_a to_o man_n that_o in_o the_o very_a saint_n who_o where_o to_o be_v admire_v as_o in_o moses_n there_o be_v find_v some_o thing_n wherein_o they_o have_v stagger_v or_o may_v stagger_v or_o for_o the_o abundance_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o smalle_a number_n of_o the_o good_a and_o saint_n jerom_n speak_v lucifer_n of_o the_o luciferian_o if_o they_o flatter_v themselves_o say_v he_o with_o this_o sentence_n write_v in_o the_o gospel_n in_o your_o opinion_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n upon_o the_o earth_n let_v they_o know_v that_o the_o faith_n there_o mention_v be_v that_o whereof_o the_o same_o lord_n say_v thy_o faith_n have_v save_v thou_o and_o agaive_v of_o the_o centurion_n i_o have_v not_o find_v so_o great_a faith_n in_o israel_n and_o a_o little_a after_o it_o be_v this_o faith_n that_o our_o lord_n have_v foretell_v shall_v be_v rare_o find_v it_o be_v this_o faith_n that_o even_o in_o those_o that_o believe_v well_o be_v hardly_o find_v perfect_a let_v it_o be_v do_v to_o thou_o say_v he_o accord_v to_o thy_o faith_n i_o will_v not_o have_v that_o word_n pronounce_v to_o i_o for_o if_o it_o be_v do_v to_o i_o accord_v to_o my_o faith_n i_o shall_v perish_v and_o yet_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o son_n and_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o second_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o saint_n augustine_n interpretes_n allegorical_o these_o other_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n then_o the_o moon_n 24._o shall_v 〈◊〉_d more_o give_v her_o light_n to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o church_n which_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n whereof_o he_o speak_v shall_v not_o appear_v we_o answer_v saint_n augustin_n mean_n that_o she_o shall_v not_o appear_v in_o her_o carnal_a and_o weak_a member_n but_o not_o that_o she_o shall_v not_o appear_v in_o her_o strong_a and_o spiritual_a champion_n that_o she_o shall_v not_o appear_v or_o less_o appear_v in_o her_o 〈◊〉_d part_n in_o her_o straw_n in_o her_o dross_n because_o that_o part_n will_v yield_v to_o persecution_n but_o not_o that_o she_o shall_v not_o appear_v in_o she_o more_o excellent_a part_n in_o her_o corn_n in_o her_o gold_n which_o contrariwise_o will_v then_o shine_v more_o than_o before_o this_o appear_v by_o what_o he_o write_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o 48._o 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v she_o say_v he_o that_o be_v sometime_o obscure_v and_o as_o it_o be_v shadow_v with_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o multitude_n of_o scandal_n that_o be_v to_o say_v persecution_n when_o the_o sinner_n 〈◊〉_d their_o bow_n to_o wound_v it_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o moon_n the_o law_n of_o their_o heart_n but_o even_o then_o she_o be_v eminent_a in_o she_o most_o firm_a champion_n and_o a_o little_a after_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n that_o be_v shall_v be_v as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o as_o the_o sand_n upon_o the_o seashore_n that_o by_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n may_v be_v mean_v the_o faithful_a less_o in_o number_n more_o steady_a and_o more_o clear_a and_o by_o the_o sand_n which_o be_v on_o the_o seashore_n the_o multitude_n of_o weak_a and_o carnal_a man_n who_o sometime_o in_o calm_a weather_n appear_v free_a and_o quiet_a and_o sometime_o be_v cover_v and_o trouble_v with_o the_o wave_n of_o tribulation_n and_o temptation_n and_o therefore_o after_o he_o have_v say_v she_o shall_v not_o appear_v he_o add_v for_o as_o much_o as_o many_o which_o seem_v to_o shine_v in_o 80._o grace_n shall_v yield_v to_o persecution_n and_o fall_v away_o and_o some_o faithful_a person_n very_o firm_a shall_v be_v trouble_v and_o again_o persecution_n shall_v so_o precede_v as_o that_o defection_n of_o some_o shall_v follow_v that_o he_o may_v show_v that_o he_o mean_v not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o appear_v in_o her_o whole_a body_n otherwise_o how_o can_v he_o 〈◊〉_d cry_v out_o in_o a_o other_o place_n she_o have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v but_o that_o she_o shall_v not_o appear_v in_o some_o of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v her_o part_n which_o nevertheless_o in_o matter_n of_o application_n of_o allegory_n where_o it_o be_v permit_v to_o bow_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n to_o accommodate_v it_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o application_n and_o where_o interpreter_n content_v themselves_o if_o the_o thing_n signify_v answer_v in_o any_o part_n to_o that_o signifiyinge_v it_o suffice_v to_o make_v he_o say_v to_o the_o end_n to_o appropriate_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o moon_n to_o the_o church_n that_o the_o church_n then_o shall_v not_o appear_v that_o be_v shall_v not_o appear_v in_o some_o of_o her_o part_n the_o three_o objection_n follow_v which_o be_v that_o saint_n paul_n write_v that_o the_o day_n 2._o of_o the_o lord_n shall_v not_o come_v till_o the_o revolt_n be_v first_o make_v and_o till_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v reveal_v and_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n who_o shall_v oppose_v and_o exalte_n himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o esteem_v a_o object_n worthy_a of_o whorship_n even_o to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o where_fw-mi god_n now_o i_o will_v not_o here_o stand_v to_o dispute_v what_o saint_n paul_n mean_n by_o this_o revolt_n or_o
rest_n for_o how_o do_v not_o thou_o deny_v the_o future_a perfection_n of_o these_o prophecy_n thou_o that_o fear_v not_o to_o deny_v so_o great_a in_o 〈◊〉_d to_o which_o the_o perfection_n be_v due_a and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 7._o although_o there_o be_v many_o kind_n of_o heresy_n among_o christian_n and_o that_o all_o will_v 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v catholic_n and_o call_v the_o rest_n except_o themselves_o heretic_n there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d church_n if_o you_o cast_v your_o eye_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n more_o abundant_a in_o multitude_n and_o as_o those_o that_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o it_o affirm_v more_o sincere_a in_o truth_n than_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o of_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v a_o other_o question_n that_o which_o suffice_v for_o this_o dispute_n be_v that_o there_o be_v one_o catholic_a church_n to_o which_o different_a heresy_n impose_v different_a name_n they_o be_v nevertheless_o all_o call_v by_o their_o particular_a 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o dare_v not_o disavow_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o arbiter_n not_o possess_v with_o favour_n to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a whereof_o they_o be_v all_o ambitious_a ought_v to_o be_v attribute_v by_o which_o word_n s._n aug._n elegant_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o call_v catholic_a because_o she_o be_v actual_o and_o at_o oneself_o same_o time_n over_o all_o nation_n but_o for_o this_o cause_n among_o other_o that_o in_o multitude_n of_o people_n and_o in_o extent_n of_o nation_n she_o exceed_v each_o one_o of_o other_o christian_a society_n of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n chap._n xx._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n for_o heretofore_o the_o catholic_a church_n like_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n which_o can_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o way_n subject_a to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n but_o be_v evident_a and_o certain_a to_o all_o in_o such_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o body_n of_o a_o undistract_a spirit_n can_v doubt_v of_o it_o the_o reply_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o excellent_a king_n hold_v this_o word_n that_o can_v be_v hide_v to_o have_v reference_n only_o to_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n and_o will_v not_o have_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n but_o by_o accident_n that_o be_v when_o she_o resemble_v the_o 〈◊〉_d build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o seem_v that_o his_o majesty_n understand_v not_o that_o this_o condition_n to_o be_v like_o a_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n and_o by_o consequent_a not_o to_o be_v hide_v belong_v perpetual_o to_o the_o church_n but_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o church_n sometime_o enjoy_v this_o condition_n as_o when_o saint_n augustine_n write_v and_o sometime_o be_v deprive_v of_o it_o as_o afterwards_o nevertelesse_a saint_n augustine_n who_o be_v the_o 14._o best_a interpreter_n that_o can_v be_v of_o his_o own_o word_n say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v and_o again_o that_o of_o she_o it_o be_v say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o epithet_n of_o be_v unconcealeable_a belong_v not_o by_o accident_n to_o the_o church_n when_o she_o shall_v be_v find_v like_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n but_o appartaine_v to_o she_o proper_o direct_o and_o perpetual_o for_o where_o his_o majesty_n add_v that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o so_o manifest_a as_o no_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n can_v doubt_v of_o she_o that_o be_v true_a and_o so_o be_v she_o still_o at_o this_o day_n in_o regard_n of_o all_o those_o that_o agree_v upon_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o accord_v to_o god_n promise_n design_v the_o catholic_a church_n by_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o her_o continuance_n and_o by_o the_o eminency_n of_o multitude_n and_o extent_n over_o nation_n above_o all_o other_o christian_a sect_n but_o to_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n who_o reject_v those_o mark_n and_o will_v receive_v no_o sign_n for_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_a purity_n of_o manner_n or_o trial_n of_o doctrine_n of_o which_o they_o attribute_v to_o themselves_o the_o judgement_n by_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n make_v accord_v to_o their_o sense_n the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o doubtful_a but_o altogether_o hide_v it_o be_v say_v s._n aug._n a_o condition_n common_a to_o all_o heretic_n 3._o not_o to_o see_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o most_o apparent_a an_o it_o build_v in_o the_o light_n of_o all_o nation_n out_o of_o who_o unity_n all_o that_o they_o do_v though_o they_o seem_v to_o do_v it_o with_o great_a care_n cannoe_v more_o warrant_v they_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o the_o spider_n web_n against_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o protestant_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n chapt_n xxi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n for_o she_o be_v not_o shut_v up_o in_o any_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n li_v i_o know_v not_o where_o in_o the_o south_n as_o the_o foolish_a donatist_n affirm_v but_o she_o be_v spread_v in_o leught_n and_o breadth_n over_o all_o the_o space_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o reply_n the_o donatist_n hold_v not_o that_o their_o church_n be_v enclose_v by_o right_a and_o for_o ever_o into_o africa_n but_o only_o in_o fact_n and_o for_o a_o certain_a time_n no_o more_o than_o the_o caluiniste_n who_o have_v pretend_v that_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n have_v be_v reduce_v for_o many_o age_n into_o the_o province_n of_o albigeois_n and_o other_o bound_n and_o afterward_o in_o some_o valley_n of_o dolphiny_a and_o yet_o the_o donatist_n do_v not_o make_v this_o confession_n with_o their_o good_a will_n but_o in_o their_o own_o defence_n by_o constraint_n contrariwise_o they_o attempt_v with_o all_o their_o power_n to_o show_v that_o their_o church_n be_v not_o restrain_v only_o into_o africa_n for_o this_o cause_n they_o keep_v a_o bishop_n at_o rome_n who_o they_o have_v send_v to_o 2._o a_o few_o african_a donatist_n that_o dwell_v there_o they_o have_v plent_v a_o pretend_a church_n in_o spanie_n in_o the_o territory_n of_o a_o lady_n call_v lucilla_n that_o favour_v 3_o they_o they_o have_v make_v the_o false_a act_n of_o the_o mock_n council_n of_o the_o arrian_n hold_v at_o philipopolis_n near_o sardica_n to_o pass_v current_n instead_o of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n because_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o those_o bishop_n among_o the_o 163._o name_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o they_o be_v address_v their_o be_v the_o name_n of_o donatus_n the_o false_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o donatistes_n party_n thereby_o to_o make_v it_o credible_a that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v communicate_v with_o they_o yea_o when_o they_o enter_v into_o conference_n with_o the_o catholic_n they_o grow_v to_o be_v so_o impudent_a but_o that_o it_o be_v confound_v at_o the_o instant_n as_o to_o maintain_v that_o their_o communion_n be_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n here_o first_o sai_z saint_n augustine_n speak_v 163._o of_o the_o conference_n that_o he_o have_v with_o fortunius_n the_o donatist_n do_v he_o attempt_n to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o his_o communion_n be_v over_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o ask_v he_o there_o 〈◊〉_d whether_o he_o can_v address_v communicatorie_a letter_n which_o we_o call_v formal_a whither_o i_o 〈◊〉_d appoint_v and_o i_o affirm_v as_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v easy_o determine_v etc._n etc._n but_o because_o the_o thing_n be_v evident_o false_a 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o this_o discourse_n by_o confusion_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o final_o when_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o visible_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d universality_n and_o say_v they_o communicate_v invisible_o with_o all_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o hide_a member_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n for_o it_o be_v against_o they_o that_o saint_n aug._n dispute_n when_o he_o write_v it_o 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o god_n have_v other_o sheep_n which_o i_o know_v not_o but_o god_n 〈◊〉_d care_n of_o they_o he_o be_v too_o absurd_a in_o humane_a sense_n that_o imagine_v such_o thing_n by_o 〈◊〉_d whereof_o their_o cause_n who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o we_o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d age_n can_v be_v no_o way_n distinguish_v in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o church_n from_o that_o of_o the_o donatistes_n of_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n
condemn_v the_o orthodoxal_a doctrine_n and_o have_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o only_o excommunicate_v but_o put_v to_o death_n flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o maintain_v the_o true_a faith_n nevertheless_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o set_v among_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o his_o deposition_n but_o the_o presumption_n that_o he_o have_v commit_v in_o undertake_v he_o and_o his_o false_a council_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o contempt_n that_o he_o have_v add_v to_o it_o in_o not_o come_v to_o yield_v reason_n for_o this_o presumption_n to_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 18._o dioscorus_n say_v anatolius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n speak_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v not_o be_v depose_v for_o the_o faith_n but_o because_o 5._o he_o have_v excommunicate_v my_o lord_n the_o archbishop_n leo_n and_o that_o have_v be_v thrice_o cite_v he_o will_v not_o appear_v and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o leon._n epistle_n to_o pope_n leo_n say_v after_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o have_v extend_v his_o 〈◊〉_d even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v commit_v by_o your_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thy_o holiness_n and_o have_v mediate_v a_o excommunication_n against_o he_o that_o strive_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o according_a to_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d against_o thou_o who_o make_v haste_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thou_o that_o hold_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o unity_n for_o with_o the_o greek_n it_o be_v a_o common_a phrase_n to_o say_v to_o haste_v themselves_o to_o do_v some_o thing_n in_o steed_n of_o say_v to_o do_v some_o thing_n as_o when_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n 〈◊〉_d write_v to_o pope_n john_n surname_v mercury_n we_o have_v make_v haste_n to_o submit_v and_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o east_n country_n to_o your_o sea_n instead_o of_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o east_n to_o your_o sea_n and_o as_o when_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d say_v anthymus_n make_v haste_n to_o cast_v we_o into_o a_o worse_a tempest_n instead_o of_o say_v anthymus_n have_v cast_v we_o into_o a_o worse_a tempest_n card_n perron_n reply_v to_o the_o king_n of_o great_a brittany_n the_o second_o book_n chap._n i._n of_o counsel_n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n to_o this_o be_v add_v always_o and_o as_o often_o as_o they_o be_v needful_a counsel_n true_o ecumenical_a and_o not_o as_o we_o see_v they_o have_v be_v often_o since_o ecumenical_a by_o name_n but_o indeed_o assemble_v only_o out_o of_o some_o province_n of_o europe_n the_o reply_n and_o even_o this_o also_o very_a often_o when_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o they_o as_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la compound_v of_o more_o than_o 400._o 12._o bishop_n the_o second_o council_n of_o ephefus_fw-la call_v from_o all_o the_o region_n of_o the_o world_n but_o assemble_v by_o heretical_a emperor_n or_o govern_v by_o the_o abettor_n of_o heretic_n and_o from_o the_o unlawful_a celebration_n whereof_o the_o one_o hold_v without_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o the_o other_o against_o 22._o it_o the_o success_n teach_v we_o that_o as_o much_o as_o counsel_n be_v profitable_a when_o the_o temporal_a authority_n second_v the_o ecclesiastical_a as_o much_o be_v they_o pernicious_a 1._o when_o temporal_a authority_n undertake_v to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n joint_o that_o as_o in_o human_a body_n the_o multitude_n of_o medicine_n be_v not_o a_o sign_n of_o health_n so_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a body_n the_o multitude_n of_o counsel_n be_v not_o a_o sign_n of_o well_o be_v witness_v the_o complaint_n of_o s._n gregory_n nazianz._n upon_o the_o multitude_n of_o counsel_n hold_v 42._o after_o that_o of_o nicaea_n of_o which_o he_o say_v that_o he_o never_o see_v good_a come_v of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n as_o much_o because_o when_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n meddle_v with_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ambition_n to_o please_v they_o which_o be_v creep_v in_o among_o the_o bishop_n thwart_v the_o judgment_n of_o the_o synod_n as_o because_o the_o hold_v subsequent_a counsel_n upon_o the_o same_o matter_n of_o those_o precede_v they_o be_v to_o wound_v and_o to_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o precede_a counsel_n and_o then_o how_o can_v the_o celebration_n of_o counsel_n have_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o make_v man_n assure_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n if_o general_a counsel_n lawful_o assemble_v that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o external_a solemn_a and_o usual_a way_n may_v err_v in_o faith_n as_o the_o protestant_n pretend_v and_o have_v not_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o that_o a_o particular_a man_n esteem_v his_o opinion_n agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o of_o the_o council_n differ_v from_o it_o might_n yea_o ought_v to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o that_o of_o the_o council_n for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n say_v that_o the_o counsel_n hold_v in_o the_o last_o age_n have_v be_v ecumenical_a in_o name_n but_o in_o effect_n assemble_v only_o from_o some_o province_n of_o europe_n he_o may_v observe_v if_o he_o please_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n the_o one_o ecumenical_a indeed_o the_o other_o ecumenical_a in_o right_n i_o call_v those_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o deed_n which_o have_v be_v assemble_v from_o all_o part_n wherein_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o episcopal_a character_n be_v preserve_v whether_o those_o part_n have_v remain_v within_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o whether_o they_o have_v be_v cut_n of_o from_o it_o i_o call_v those_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o right_n which_o be_v compound_v only_o of_o those_o part_n which_o have_v remain_v within_o the_o body_n and_o society_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o who_o only_o as_o such_o belong_v the_o right_a to_o judge_v 〈◊〉_d in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n at_o the_o which_o there_o assist_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkeshipp_n of_o antioch_n because_o they_o be_v arrian_n and_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nicaea_n at_o which_o the_o cophte_n that_o be_v the_o natural_a egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n assist_v not_o because_o they_o be_v eutychian_o now_o both_o these_o kind_n of_o counsel_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n as_o concern_v certainty_n in_o decision_n of_o religion_n for_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v there_o representative_o both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v there_o equal_o infallible_a but_o in_o regard_n of_o evidence_n the_o authority_n of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n in_o deed_n be_v more_o powerful_a and_o eminent_a in_o the_o behalf_n of_o those_o man_n which_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n then_o that_o of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n in_o right_a for_o in_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o right_n there_o be_v none_o but_o catholic_n that_o be_v assure_v that_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o assemble_v whereas_o in_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o deed_n each_o of_o the_o party_n contest_v be_v of_o agreement_n that_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o represent_v and_o the_o medley_n of_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a bishop_n that_o be_v provide_v with_o the_o only_a succession_n of_o the_o episcopal_a character_n but_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n hinder_v not_o but_o that_o in_o such_o counsel_n the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v work_v by_o the_o common_a note_n of_o the_o assembly_n because_o the_o true_a church_n receive_v those_o bishop_n there_o for_o the_o effect_n then_o present_a into_o her_o charity_n and_o into_o her_o communion_n while_o they_o be_v join_v with_o she_o to_o the_o end_n to_o seek_v mean_n to_o assemblish_v unity_n she_o re-enables_a and_o restore_v to_o they_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o assembly_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o exercise_n and_o of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o their_o order_n whereof_o before_o there_o remain_v to_o they_o nothing_o but_o the_o character_n to_o say_v then_o that_o some_o of_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o latter_a age_n have_v not_o be_v ecumenical_a because_o the_o greek_n or_o ethiopian_n do_v not_o assist_v there_o be_v not_o a_o valuable_a exception_n unless_o it_o first_o appear_v that_o the_o greek_n or_o ethiopian_n be_v true_a and_o lawful_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v not_o be_v just_o cut_v off_o and_o divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a communion_n for_o it_o suffice_v to_o make_v a_o council_n general_a and_o universal_a in_o right_n that_o all_o the_o part_n that_o remain_v actual_a within_o the_o body_n &_o
communion_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n do_v concur_v to_o it_o and_o it_o be_v not_o requisite_a that_o those_o that_o be_v lawful_o separate_v from_o her_o either_o for_o schism_n or_o heresy_n as_o be_v the_o greek_n who_o err_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o his_o majesty_n himself_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n &_o the_o natural_a egyptian_n &_o ethiopian_n who_o 〈◊〉_d err_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o hipostaticall_a union_n &_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o eutichian_o and_o monophysites_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n from_o before_o the_o five_o council_n shall_v assist_v to_o it_o and_o notwithstanding_o yet_o even_o in_o these_o last_o age_n there_o have_v be_v counsel_n ecumenical_a indeed_o and_o in_o the_o sense_n whereto_o his_o majesty_n employ_v this_o term_n when_o the_o part_n separate_v froth_n body_n of_o the_o church_n whould_v have_v conspire_v to_o some_o reunion_n as_o that_o of_o lateran_n under_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o where_o there_o where_o with_o the_o pope_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o legate_n of_o those_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o more_o than_o 400._o bishop_n and_o 70._o archbishop_n from_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o greek_a as_o latin_a and_o that_o of_o florence_n under_o eugenius_n the_o four_o where_o assist_v the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_n with_o their_o emperor_n and_o their_o patriarch_n and_o the_o legate_n of_o three_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o armenian_n and_o the_o deputy_n also_o of_o the_o ethiopian_n and_o in_o both_o these_o they_o be_v agree_v of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o in_o these_o day_n be_v again_o put_v to_o question_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o want_n of_o general_n counsel_n can_v not_o make_v the_o church_n to_o be_v less_o acknowledgeable_a in_o the_o last_o day_n than_o she_o be_v in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o effect_n of_o counsel_n for_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n chapt_n ii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o in_o the_o ancient_a time_n it_o be_v a_o firm_a bond_n by_o which_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v bind_v in_o the_o frame_n of_o oneself_o body_n which_o body_n for_o this_o cause_n be_v meruailous_o noble_a and_o eminent_a be_v so_o constitute_v in_o the_o view_n and_o knowledge_n of_o all_o that_o none_o think_v they_o will_v can_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o she_o one_o faith_n one_o policy_n one_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o frequent_a visitation_n of_o the_o part_n among_o themselves_o a_o marvellous_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o member_n a_o admirable_a sim_fw-la pathie_n the_o reply_n rather_o some_o time_n these_o be_v the_o mean_n which_o heretic_n or_o those_o emperor_n that_o favour_v they_o make_v use_n of_o to_o shake_v and_o dissolve_v the_o mass_n and_o frame_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o proceed_v the_o complaint_n of_o the_o father_n that_o after_o thing_n have_v be_v once_o resolve_v of_o in_o the_o church_n they_o shall_v no_o more_o hold_v other_o new_a counsel_n that_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n every_o other_o council_n be_v superfluous_a and_o that_o they_o never_o see_v any_o good_a effect_n of_o all_o those_o counsel_n as_o be_v by_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n above_o say_v and_o therefore_o these_o rich_a and_o magnificent_a amplification_n of_o eloquence_n be_v no_o impediment_n but_o that_o the_o church_n when_o luther_n begin_v may_v have_v be_v not_o only_o as_o much_o but_o more_o visible_a illustrious_a and_o eminent_a than_o she_o be_v many_o time_n in_o those_o age_n witness_v the_o objection_n that_o the_o donatist_n 48._o make_v to_o saint_n austin_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n principal_o in_o the_o east_n in_o saint_n hillarys_n time_n such_o be_v say_v saint_n aus_n the_o time_n whereof_o hillary_n have_v write_v from_o whence_o thou_o think_v to_o set_v ambush_n for_o so_o many_o divine_a witness_n as_o if_o the_o church_n be_v they_o perish_v from_o the_o globe_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o 57_o saint_n jerom_n because_o the_o east_n strike_v against_o herself_o by_o the_o ancient_a fury_n of_o her_o people_n tear_v in_o little_a piece_n the_o unseam_v coat_n of_o our_o lord_n weave_v from_o above_o and_o that_o the_o fox_n destroy_v the_o vine_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v difficult_a among_o the_o dry_a pond_n and_o which_o have_v no_o water_n to_o discern_v the_o seal_a fountain_n and_o the_o enclose_a garden_n therefore_o i_o think_v i_o ought_v to_o consult_v with_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n add_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v then_o set_v in_o such_o a_o eminence_n of_o view_n and_o knowledge_n that_o she_o can_v not_o be_v unknown_a no_o not_o by_o those_o that_o will_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o she_o this_o be_v very_o true_a if_o you_o take_v all_o catholic_a province_n together_o and_o compare_v they_o with_o every_o particular_a sect_n and_o it_o have_v place_n in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o be_v within_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o neither_o then_o nor_o since_o can_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o body_n and_o society_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o hypothesis_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v discern_v by_o inimitable_a and_o indisputable_a mark_n and_o that_o those_o that_o have_v they_o not_o can_v not_o fain_o to_o have_v they_o as_o the_o communion_n 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n the_o continue_a and_o not_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o ministry_n and_o doctrine_n the_o eminency_n and_o universality_n above_o all_o other_o christian_a sect_n take_v every_o one_o a_o part_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o as_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n who_o will_v discern_v the_o church_n by_o mark_n more_o obscure_a than_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o such_o as_o all_o sect_n persuade_v themselves_o to_o have_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o conformity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o scripture_n interpret_v according_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n there_o be_v nothing_o less_o evident_a for_o to_o those_o the_o church_n how_o eminent_a soever_o she_o have_v be_v have_v always_o be_v obscure_a &_o hide_v not_o for_o the_o want_n of_o her_o light_n &_o eminency_n but_o because_o of_o their_o darkness_n and_o blindness_n this_o say_v saint_n aus_n be_v common_a to_o all_o heretic_n to_o be_v unable_a to_o see_v the_o thing_n that_o in_o the_o world_n be_v 〈◊〉_d most_o manifest_a and_o constitute_v in_o the_o light_n of_o all_o nation_n out_o of_o who_o unity_n whatsoever_o they_o work_v although_o they_o seem_v to_o do_v it_o with_o great_a care_n and_o diligence_n can_v no_o more_o profitt_a they_o against_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o the_o spider_n web_n against_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a and_o again_o the_o church_n be_v not_o hide_v for_o she_o be_v not_o under_o a_o 〈◊〉_d bushel_n but_o upon_o a_o candlestick_n to_o give_v light_n to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o of_o she_o it_o be_v say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v but_o she_o be_v as_o hide_a to_o the_o donatist_n who_o hear_v so_o clear_a and_o manifest_a testimony_n which_o demonstrate_v she_o to_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o yet_o have_v rather_o blindfold_o strike_v against_o the_o mountain_n then_o ascend_v it_o and_o other_o where_o how_o can_v i_o call_v those_o but_o blind_a 2._o that_o see_v not_o so_o great_a a_o mountain_n and_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o the_o lamp_n set_v upon_o the_o candlestick_n of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o other_o patriarch_n chap._n iii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n if_o anio_fw-la one_o be_v fall_v for_o heresy_n or_o schism_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o one_o of_o the_o church_n i_o say_v not_o one_o of_o the_o first_o which_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o fower_n patriarch_n but_o of_o any_o other_o of_o those_o which_o be_v much_o less_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v know_v he_o be_v repute_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o reply_n in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n austin_n there_o be_v yet_o but_o three_o true_a 〈◊〉_d seat_n in_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v invest_v with_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n to_o wit_n rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n jerusalem_n have_v obtain_v no_o patriarchall_a division_n till_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n for_o before_o it_o be_v
thou_o scatter_v and_o s._n au_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o 〈◊〉_d the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o prosper_v who_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d 6._o repute_v his_o second_o self_n and_o who_o joseph_n scalager_n call_v the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o his_o age_n the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a priesthood_n have_v make_v 〈◊〉_d great_a by_o the_o tribunal_n of_o religion_n then_o by_o that_o of_o the_o empire_n &_o else_o where_o change_v his_o prose_n into_o verse_n 〈◊〉_d rome_n great_a apostle_n peter_n sacred_a seat_n head_n of_o the_o churches-bodie_n here_o below_o have_v by_o faith_n empire_n make_v herself_o more_o great_a then_o she_o by_o all_o her_o arm_a power_n can_v grow_v and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o anastasius_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n 〈◊〉_d it_o have_v be_v provide_v by_o a_o grand_a order_n that_o all_o shall_v not_o attribute_v all_o thing_n to_o themselves_o but_o that_o in_o every_o province_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o who_o sentence_n may_v hold_v the_o first_o place_n among_o their_o brother_n and_o again_o that_o there_o may_v be_v other_o constitute_v in_o the_o great_a city_n who_o may_v use_v a_o great_a diligence_n by_o who_o the_o care_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v flow_v to_o the_o only_a seat_n of_o peter_n and_o therefore_o 〈◊〉_d the_o allexandrians_n will_v accuse_v dionysius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n their_o bishop_n they_o go_v up_o to_o rome_n say_v s._n athanasius_n &_o accuse_v he_o 〈◊〉_d before_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o when_o the_o same_o athanasius_n likewise_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constautinople_n and_o marcellus_n primate_n of_o aneyra_n in_o galatia_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o diverse_a counsel_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v sozomene_n restore_v to_o each_o one_o his_o 〈◊〉_d church_n because_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v and_o when_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v propound_v to_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n the_o council_n remit_v the_o judgement_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o iwenall_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v that_o the_o anoient_fw-fr custom_n and_o 〈◊〉_d tradition_n bare_a that_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n shall_v be_v rule_v by_o the_o roman_a and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n disannul_v the_o act_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n they_o except_v the_o creation_n of_o maximus_n patriark_n 〈◊〉_d of_o antioch_n because_o say_v anatolius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o pope_n have_v receive_v he_o into_o his_o communion_n have_v judge_v that_o he_o shall_v rule_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o when_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z in_o the_o border_n of_o persia_n and_o subject_a to_o the_o patriarkhip_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o same_o council_n of_o ephesus_n he_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d of_o chalcedon_n receive_v he_o because_o say_v the_o senate_n the_o pope_n have_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o dignity_n and_o when_o flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o by_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n he_o appeal_v likewise_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o say_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n follow_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o counsel_n 〈◊〉_d and_o when_o john_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v be_v drive_v from_o his_o sea_n by_o the_o plot_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d zeno_n he_o also_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n &_o that_o with_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n as_o liberatus_n archdeacon_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o writer_n of_o a_o thousand_o and_o one_o hundred_o year_n antiquity_n report_v in_o these_o word_n john_n say_v liberatus_n have_v take_v synodical_a letter_n of_o intercession_n 2._o from_o calendian_a patriarch_n of_o antioch_n appeal_v to_o pope_n simplicius_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o other_o patriarch_n for_o 〈◊〉_d as_o for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o seem_v to_o rule_v the_o bishop_n 32_o of_o alexandria_n &_o antioch_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o hereafter_o of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o time_n of_o s._n peter_n stay_n at_o antioch_n and_o at_o rome_n chapt_n iv._o but_o against_o this_o that_o we_o have_v affirm_v of_o the_o sit_v of_o saint_n pfter_o at_o antioch_n and_o at_o rome_n caluine_n and_o the_o other_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n form_n twelve_o principal_a objection_n eight_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o four_o from_o the_o father_n the_o first_o objection_n be_v that_o s._n paul_n find_v s._n peter_n in_o jerusalem_n the_o two_o first_o voyage_n that_o he_o make_v thither_o the_o one_o three_o year_n after_o his_o conversion_n &_o the_o other_o when_o ibid._n he_o carry_v the_o alm_n for_o the_o famine_n foretell_v by_o agabus_n &_o then_o that_o the_o episcopal_a stay_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o antioch_n which_o after_o s._n jeroms_n computation_n between_o these_o two_o voyage_n can_v not_o be_v seven_o year_n as_o s._n gregory_n affirm_v it_o &_o as_o we_o suppose_v it_o for_o asmuch_o as_o s._n paul_n conversionhappen_v at_o the_o soon_o three_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n &_o s._n peter_n depart_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o go_v to_o rome_n the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o claudius_n which_o be_v the_o eleaventh_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o 15._o christ._n the_o second_o objection_n be_v that_o s._n peter_n still_o assist_v at_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o council_n hold_v for_o the_o legal_a cause_n about_o twenty_o year_n say_v they_o after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o be_v crucify_v as_o we_o say_v the_o fourteen_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o nero_n that_o be_v the_o seven_o &_o thirtith_v year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o then_o he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v 25_o year_n at_o rome_n as_o we_o say_v the_o three_o that_o s._n paul_n address_v the_o principal_a of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n do_v not_o there_o salute_v s._n peter_n who_o he_o will_v not_o 16._o have_v forget_v if_o he_o have_v be_v there_o the_o four_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n write_v 2._o from_o rome_n to_o the_o philippian_n complain_v that_o every_o one_o seek_v his_o own_o &_o not_o that_o which_o be_v of_o christ._n and_o to_o timothy_n that_o all_o have_v abandon_v he_o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o s._n petfr_n have_v be_v there_o the_o 4._o fist_n that_o when_o s._n paul_n come_v to_o rome_n the_o brother_n go_v to_o meet_v he_o 28._o among_o who_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o s._n petfr_n and_o the_o jew_n pray_v he_o to_o declare_v to_o they_o his_o opinion_n of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o christian_n a_o thing_n they_o will_v not_o have_v require_v if_o s._n peter_n have_v preach_v at_o rome_n before_o he_o the_o six_o that_o s._n luke_n who_o write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o s._n peter_n voyage_n to_o rome_n the_o seven_o that_o s._n paul_n who_o have_v describe_v the_o interview_n between_o s._n 2._o peter_n and_o he_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n speak_v not_o of_o their_o interview_n at_o 21._o rome_n which_o be_v the_o most_o famous_a city_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o eigth_n that_o s._n john_n make_v mention_v of_o the_o kind_n of_o death_n by_o which_o s._n peter_n shall_v glorify_v god_n but_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o death_n now_o let_v we_o first_o dispatch_v the_o objection_n take_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o after_o we_o will_v proceed_v to_o those_o take_v out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o first_o objection_n then_o from_o scripture_n which_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n still_o 6._o find_v saint_n peter_n in_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o two_o first_o voyage_n that_o he_o make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o three_o year_n after_o his_o conversion_n and_o the_o other_o when_o 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o alm_n for_o the_o famine_n foretell_v by_o agabus_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o episcopal_a stay_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o antioch_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o two_o voyage_n can_v not_o be_v of_o seven_o year_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d paul_n happen_v not_o in_o the_o three_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o 〈◊〉_d as_o they_o pretend_v a_o thing_n which_o trouble_v all_o the_o harmony_n of_o the_o history_n but_o the_o first_o and_o this_o i_o prove_v in_o this_o manner_n between_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o s._n 〈◊〉_d departure_n to_o go_v to_o rome_n s._n paul_n remain_v
oppress_v &_o enclose_v as_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v constrain_v to_o hide_v themselves_o in_o cave_n and_o place_n under_o ground_n to_o avoid_v the_o persecution_n &_o tyranny_n of_o the_o infidel_n joint_o that_o we_o say_v not_o that_o s._n peter_n remain_v always_o fix_v and_o tie_v to_o rome_n while_o he_o be_v bishop_n thereof_o but_o that_o he_o go_v from_o time_n to_o time_n plant_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o lesser_a city_n and_o place_v bishop_n over_o they_o and_o that_o during_o these_o voyage_n he_o administer_v the_o roman_a church_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o linus_n and_o cletus_n who_o he_o have_v there_o establish_v for_o his_o coadjutor_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o if_o we_o believe_v russinus_n they_o be_v sometime_o clem._n reckon_v in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o s._n clement_n and_o sometime_o after_o he_o and_o whereas_o the_o jew_n pray_v s._n paul_n when_o he_o 28._o come_v to_o rome_n to_o inform_v they_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o christian_n which_o they_o 6._o object_n to_o we_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o saint_n peter_n have_v already_o be_v bishop_n there_o we_o answer_v that_o they_o pray_v s._n paul_n to_o inform_v they_o 8._o not_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o christian_n but_o of_o the_o opinion_n that_o he_o who_o they_o repute_v to_o be_v great_o verse_v in_o the_o jewish_a doctrine_n have_v of_o they_o otherwise_o how_o can_v s._n paul_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n above_o four_o year_n before_o his_o arrival_n at_o rome_n your_o faith_n be_v declare_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n 1._o to_o the_o six_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n luke_n who_o have_v write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o voyage_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o rome_n we_o answer_v s._n luke_n purpose_v to_o write_v particular_o the_o act_n of_o saint_n paul_n his_o master_n and_o not_o these_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n for_o except_v that_o which_o pass_v between_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o saint_n paul_n where_o he_o treat_v the_o history_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o common_a to_o make_v it_o serve_v for_o a_o foundation_n to_o the_o particular_a relation_n of_o the_o act_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o except_v the_o discourse_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o cornelius_n which_o he_o add_v there_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o conversion_n be_v the_o overture_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n for_o who_o vocation_n s._n paul_n have_v be_v call_v s._n luke_n do_v not_o after_o that_o to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n make_v mention_n of_o any_o other_o apostle_n unless_o in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o place_n where_o s._n paul_n be_v and_o yet_o he_o omitt_v the_o voyage_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o visit_v s._n peter_n &_o s._n peter_n &_o s._n paul_n meeting_n at_o antioch_n and_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o association_n give_v by_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n &_o s._n john_n to_o s._n paul_n &_o the_o voyage_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n paul_n into_o galatia_n which_o cause_v beza_n to_o say_v luke_n have_v omit_v many_o thing_n and_o principal_o s._n paul_n voyage_n to_o the_o galatian_n and_o 〈◊〉_d therefore_o so_o far_o be_v s._n jerom_n from_o make_v use_n of_o s._n luke_n silence_n to_o weaken_v the_o credit_n of_o s._n peter_n stay_n at_o rome_n as_o contrariwise_o he_o argue_v the_o stay_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o antioch_n and_o at_o rome_n to_o show_v how_o s._n luke_n have_v pass_v many_o thing_n under_o silence_n and_o take_v this_o foundation_n for_o a_o certain_a and_o 2_o undoubted_a principle_n of_o history_n final_o say_v s._n jerom_n we_o have_v learn_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o be_v be_v transfer_v to_o tome_n which_o luke_n have_v utter_o omit_v to_o the_o seven_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o interview_n between_o s._n peter_n and_o himself_o both_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n but_o speak_v of_o no_o meeting_n between_o s._n peter_n and_o he_o at_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o 8._o famous_a city_n of_o the_o world_n we_o answer_v that_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatians_n which_o be_v the_o only_a place_n where_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o enterview_n between_o s._n peter_n and_o he_o to_o dissipate_v the_o reproach_n that_o they_o that_o will_v seduce_v the_o 〈◊〉_d lay_v upon_o he_o that_o he_o have_v not_o be_v institute_v apostle_n by_o christ_n but_o by_o s._n peter_n &_o by_o the_o other_o apostle_n who_o give_v he_o their_o right_a hand_n for_o association_n be_v write_v if_o we_o believe_v s._n chrysostome_n before_o rom._n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o then_o we_o must_v not_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o s._n paul_n touch_v nothing_o there_o of_o the_o interview_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o he_o at_o rome_n since_o it_o be_v write_v before_o the_o voyage_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o rome_n to_o the_o eight_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n john_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n but_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o 8._o death_n we_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o s._n john_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n &_o not_o of_o of_o the_o place_n where_o because_o the_o kind_n and_o not_o the_o place_n of_o the_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n belong_v to_o the_o explication_n of_o this_o prophecy_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o thou_o shall_v be_v old_a thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o 〈◊〉_d hand_n and_o the_o other_o that_o so_o far_o be_v this_o clause_n of_o s._n john_n from_o weaken_v the_o belief_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n at_o rome_n that_o it_o full_o confirm_v and_o authorise_v it_o for_o s._n john_n have_v write_v his_o gospel_n many_o year_n after_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o s._n peee_a and_o have_v explain_v and_o prove_v this_o 〈◊〉_d os_fw-la our_o lord_n thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n by_o the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n without_o specify_v it_o particular_o it_o must_v be_v that_o when_o s._n john_n 〈◊〉_d his_o gospel_n the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n be_v know_v and_o evident_a to_o all_o part_n of_o the_o church_n now_o the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n can_v not_o be_v know_v to_o all_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o place_n of_o his_o death_n must_v likewise_o be_v know_v to_o they_o nor_o can_v the_o place_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n be_v know_v to_o all_o the_o church_n &_o be_v any_o other_o then_o rome_n for_o how_o can_v it_o cor_n háppen_v that_o not_o only_o all_o the_o ancient_a author_n yea_o those_o that_o write_v in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o s._n john_n as_o 25._o s._n dionysius_n of_o corinth_n 3._o s._n ireneus_n 25._o caius_n praescrip_n tertullian_n &_o infinite_a other_o but_o the_o very_a stone_n also_o &_o the_o inscription_n of_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o s._n paul_n which_o be_v yet_o preserve_v and_o public_o show_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o time_n of_o caius_n shall_v witness_v with_o a_o common_a voice_n that_o saint_n peter_n have_v be_v martyre_v at_o rome_n &_o that_o no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a do_v ever_o glory_n in_o his_o relic_n and_o his_o martyrdom_n if_o from_o the_o time_n wherein_o s._n john_n write_v his_o gospel_n the_o place_n of_o s._n pfter_n death_n have_v be_v know_v to_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n &_o have_v be_v any_o other_o then_o rome_n and_o therefore_o what_o remain_v in_o all_o the_o text_n object_v to_o we_o from_o scripture_n which_o agree_v not_o perfect_o with_o the_o chronology_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o history_n of_o s._n peter_n saint_n paul_n affirm_v that_o three_o year_n after_o his_o conversion_n he_o travel_v to_o jeru_n 1_o salem_fw-la to_o visit_v s._n peter_n consent_v not_o that_o exact_o with_o our_o computation_n which_o reckon_v the_o conversion_n of_o s._n paul_n the_o first_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n &_o the_o voyage_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o antioch_n the_o five_o s._n luke_n report_v that_o s._n paul_n be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o alm_n during_o the_o famine_n which_o begin_v the_o eleaventh_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n find_v s._n peter_n there_o prisoner_n do_v not_o that_o whole_o agree_v 12._o with_o our_o chronologie_n which_o suppose_v that_o the_o episcopal_a seat_n of_o saint_n peter_n at_o antioch_n be_v seven_o year_n five_o complete_a &_o two_o imperfect_a the_o same_o s._n luke_n write_v that_o s._n peter_n withdraw_v himself_o
from_o jerusalem_n at_o his_o delivery_n which_o be_v the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o ibid._n claudius_n go_v into_o a_o other_o place_n that_o be_v to_o say_v into_o a_o other_o place_n proper_a to_o go_v out_o of_o judea_n &_o from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o herod_n such_o as_o be_v joppa_n where_o those_o use_v to_o embark_v that_o will_v sail_v to_o rome_n &_o into_o the_o west_n do_v not_o that_o excellent_o agree_v with_o s._n jeroms_n computation_n who_o petro._n report_v that_o s._n peter_n come_v to_o rome_n the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o claudius_n for_o that_o s._n luke_n say_v only_o that_o he_o go_v into_o a_o other_o place_n &_o express_v not_o whither_o but_o leave_v he_o seven_o year_n after_o without_o mention_n it_o be_v not_o to_o abandon_v the_o history_n of_o s._n paul_n his_o master_n the_o same_o s._n luke_n testify_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v again_o at_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n 15._o hold_v for_o legal_a cause_n fit_n not_o that_o just_a with_o that_o that_o suetonius_n say_v claud._n that_o claudius_n drive_v the_o jew_n from_o rome_n which_o raise_v tumult_n for_o christ_n 6_o cause_n &_o to_o that_o that_o orosius_n note_n that_o this_o banishment_n be_v in_o the_o nine_o year_n of_o claudius_n that_o be_v the_o eighteen_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o very_a year_n of_o the_o council_n s._n john_n expound_v this_o prophecy_n 21._o of_o our_o lord_n to_o s._n peter_n thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n and_o aen_o other_o shall_v gird_v thou_o by_o the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n and_o add_v that_o our_o lord_n foretell_v enigmaticallie_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o s._n peter_n say_v to_o he_o follow_v i_o do_v not_o this_o agree_v with_o that_o tertullian_n say_v speak_v of_o alia_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n happy_a church_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v shed_v all_o their_o doctrine_n with_o their_o blood_n in_o which_o peter_n be_v equal_v to_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o with_o what_o s._n ambrose_n write_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v come_v forth_o of_o rome_n to_o fly_v persecution_n our_o lord_n appear_v to_o he_o and_o say_v i_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v crucify_v again_o s._n peter_n insinuate_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n that_o he_o write_v it_o from_o babylon_n &_o many_o greek_a copy_n contrary_o date_n it_o from_o rome_n be_v not_o this_o solued_a by_o that_o that_o eusebius_n and_o s._n jerom_n say_v that_o s._n peter_n call_v rome_n allegorical_o 14._o babylon_n for_o as_o much_o as_o rome_n be_v then_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o same_o as_o the_o asian_a babylon_n have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophet_n he_o add_v the_o salutation_n of_o mark_n the_o church_n say_v he_o which_o be_v in_o babylon_n and_o mark_v my_o son_n salute_v ibid._n you_o do_v not_o that_o agree_v both_o with_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n marcus_n which_o be_v a_o roman_a name_n and_o not_o a_o babylonian_a and_o with_o these_o word_n of_o papias_n auditor_n of_o s._n john_n report_v by_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n mark_v be_v request_v 〈◊〉_d at_o rome_n by_o the_o brother_n write_v a_o short_a gospel_n which_o peter_n have_v read_v approve_v for_o whereas_o erasmus_n say_v that_o s._n jerom_n attribute_n the_o name_n of_o `_o babylon_n to_o rom_n in_o choler_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v be_v evil_o entreat_v 〈◊〉_d there_o and_o will_v have_v that_o babylon_n whereof_o s._n peter_n speak_v to_o be_v the_o asirian-babylon_n these_o be_v two_o childish_a ignorances_n the_o one_o not_o to_o know_v that_o s._n jerom_n have_v already_o interpret_v that_o babylon_n whereof_o s._n peter_n 〈◊〉_d speak_v to_o be_v rome_n both_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o isaiah_n and_o in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a author_n write_v long_o before_o the_o evil_a entreaty_n 8._o that_o he_o receive_v at_o rome_n which_o happen_v under_o syricius_n and_o the_o other_o not_o to_o know_v that_o when_o s._n peter_n write_v this_o epistle_n josephus_n witness_v there_o be_v then_o no_o jew_n in_o babylon_n but_o this_o be_v enough_o of_o the_o instance_n of_o scripture_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o those_o of_o the_o father_n which_o consist_v in_o four_o principal_a objection_n the_o first_o that_o clemens_n comanus_n write_v to_o james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o rome_n a_o thing_n repugnant_a say_v the_o obiector_n to_o scripture_n which_o witness_v that_o james_n be_v martyre_v long_o before_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n the_o second_o that_o s._n jerom_n write_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v crucify_v in_o judea_n the_o three_o that_o s._n au_v affirm_v that_o the_o history_n of_o the_o battle_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o simon_n magus_n at_o 〈◊〉_d rome_n proceed_v from_o a_o opinion_n or_o as_o they_o say_v from_o a_o fabulous_a narration_n and_o the_o fowrth_n that_o in_o the_o order_n of_o peter_n successor_n some_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d before_o clement_n &_o some_o after_o to_o which_o they_o far_o add_v for_o the_o banquet_n and_o confecte_n after_o the_o feast_n that_o eusebius_n and_o the_o legend_n upon_o which_o they_o charge_v we_o that_o we_o find_v the_o papacy_n contradict_v one_o another_o for_o as_o much_o as_o eusebius_n say_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v crucify_v and_o the_o legend_n say_v he_o be_v behead_v to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o clement_n write_v to_o james_n brother_n to_o our_o lord_n declare_v to_o he_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o s._n peter_n we_o answer_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o that_o epistle_n be_v apocrypha_n and_o suppose_a for_o 〈◊〉_d though_o it_o be_v translate_v from_o greek_a into_o latin_a by_o ruffinus_n &_o that_o it_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o vaison_n which_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d the_o three_o contain_v many_o good_a doctrine_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v certain_a thar_z the_o greek_a original_a of_o the_o recognition_n of_o clement_n to_o which_o it_o be_v annex_v &_o relative_a be_v apocrypha_n &_o have_v be_v either_o suppose_v or_o corrupt_v by_o the_o hebionite_n the_o second_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o who_o this_o epistle_n be_v address_v be_v not_o james_n the_o apostle_n brother_n to_o our_o lord_n but_o simon_n brother_n &_o successor_n in_o the_o bishopric_n to_o james_n the_o 30._o apostle_n entitle_v the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o this_o epistle_n call_v james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n the_o hebrew_n have_v to_o bear_v many_o name_n &_o sometime_o to_o inherit_v name_n one_o from_o a_o other_o as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o repugnancy_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o ruffinus_n interpreter_n &_o advocate_n for_o his_o epistle_n who_o have_v translate_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o &_o by_o the_o inscription_n in_o the_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n entitle_v he_o to_o who_o he_o address_v it_o james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n &_o entitle_v he_o not_o apostle_n which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v forget_v to_o do_v in_o that_o place_n if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o apostle_n james_n brother_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o three_o that_o those_o that_o object_n this_o strain_v forth_o a_o gnat_n swallow_v a_o camel_n that_o be_v in_o think_v to_o tax_v the_o ignorance_n of_o other_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o chronologie_n of_o the_o father_n discover_v their_o own_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o apostle_n s._n james_n who_o martyrdom_n they_o say_v the_o scripture_n report_v be_v the_o apostle_n james_n brother_n of_o john_n martyre_v by_o herod_n in_o the_o twelve_o of_o the_o act_n &_o 8_o not_o the_o apostle_n james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o be_v ten_o year_n after_o still_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o who_o death_n the_o scripture_n never_o speak_v in_o any_o 22._o part_n of_o it_o the_o church_n have_v learn_v what_o she_o know_v of_o it_o not_o from_o the_o scripture_n but_o from_o josephus_n and_o from_o hegesippus_n and_o from_o clement_n alexandrinus_n &_o from_o eusebius_n &_o from_o s._n jerom_n who_o testify_v that_o james_n the_o 22._o apostle_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n die_v under_o the_o pontificate_n of_o ananus_fw-la the_o young_a and_o in_o the_o seven_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o nero._n to_o the_o second_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n jerom_n write_v that_o saint_n peter_n be_v crucify_v in_o judea_n we_o answer_v that_o s._n jerom_n do_v no_o where_o write_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v crucify_v in_o
cause_n of_o 9_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v determine_v till_o first_o the_o decision_n have_v be_v make_v at_o rome_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o sacerdot_n all_o law_n require_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v constitute_v without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sentence_n shall_v be_v annul_v nevertheless_o for_o as_o much_o as_o calvin_n object_n that_o if_o this_o cause_n have_v belong_v to_o the_o pope_n ordinary_a jurisdiction_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v judge_v it_o by_o the_o emperor_n commission_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o clear_v it_o to_o this_o objection_n then_o before_o we_o 〈◊〉_d the_o matter_n to_o the_o bottom_n we_o will_v answer_v in_o form_n of_o a_o prologue_n five_o thing_n first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o commission_n except_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o three_o assessor_n of_o the_o gaul_n that_o the_o emperor_n name_v to_o content_v the_o importunity_n of_o the_o donatist_n &_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v serve_v for_o 〈◊〉_d &_o warrant_n of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n but_o a_o remittment_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o emperor_n confession_n who_o avow_v that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o he_o to_o examine_v this_o cause_n &_o by_o the_o election_n that_o the_o pope_n make_v of_o fifteen_o other_o bishop_n that_o he_o take_v for_o his_o assistant_n beside_o those_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v nominate_v and_o therefore_o although_o s._n aug._n in_o regard_n of_o the_o donatists_n intention_n sometime_o call_v this_o remittmenta_fw-mi delegation_n nevertheless_o he_o show_v sufficient_o that_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o relegation_n than_o a_o delegation_n when_o he_o note_v that_o the_o reason_n wherefore_o the_o emperor_n do_v it_o be_v for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o dare_v not_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n your_o superior_n say_v he_o to_o the_o donatist_n first_o bring_v the_o cause_n of_o cecilianus_n to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o because_o 〈◊〉_d 166._o dare_v not_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n he_o delegated_a the_o examination_n and_o 〈◊〉_d thereof_o to_o bishop_n i_o add_v that_o he_o use_v this_o language_n by_o synecdoche_n and_o referringe_a the_o word_n delegation_n to_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o gaul_n only_o that_o be_v depute_v to_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o to_o all_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n as_o he_o witness_v elsewhere_o by_o these_o word_n the_o emperor_n give_v to_o the_o donatist_n the_o judge_n that_o themselves_o have_v demand_v that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 171._o the_o judge_n of_o the_o gaul_n and_o again_o donatus_n be_v hear_v at_o rome_n by_o the_o judge_n that_o himself_o have_v demand_v for_o of_o the_o nineteen_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v but_o three_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o those_o that_o donatus_n have_v demand_v donatus_n have_v demand_v but_o three_o but_o saint_n austin_n extende_v 29._o this_o clause_n by_o synecdoche_n to_o all_o the_o council_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o three_o judge_n demand_v by_o donatus_n have_v judge_v in_o common_a with_o all_o the_o council_n and_o be_v find_v so_o conformable_a to_o the_o rest_n as_o the_o judgement_n 1._o of_o the_o council_n which_o pass_v all_o with_o one_o voice_n and_o without_o any_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o they_o be_v oneself_o same_o thing_n the_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o constantine_n do_v not_o interpose_v his_o authority_n in_o this_o affair_n as_o master_n by_o himself_o of_o the_o cause_n but_o as_o a_o arbiter_n seek_v by_o the_o donatist_n and_o assuringe_v himself_o as_o a_o catholic_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v avow_v by_o the_o catholic_n this_o matter_n say_v saint_n augustin_n belong_v 162._o great_o to_o the_o emperor_n care_n whereof_o he_o ought_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n for_o the_o donatist_n have_v make_v he_o arbyter_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o tradition_n and_o of_o the_o schism_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o emperor_n interposition_n in_o this_o cause_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o not_o of_o right_a and_o who_o example_n can_v be_v allege_v for_o a_o pattern_n of_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n the_o three_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o controversy_n question_v among_o the_o catholic_n and_o according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a law_n of_o the_o church_n but_o a_o suit_n commence_v by_o the_o heretic_n against_o the_o catholic_n and_o by_o way_n extraordinary_a to_o all_o the_o law_n and_o form_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o donatist_n have_v already_o break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n and_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n they_o be_v say_v saint_n augustin_n already_o ibid._n culpable_a of_o the_o schism_n and_o already_o stain_v with_o the_o horrible_a crime_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o altar_n against_o altar_n by_o mean_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o judge_n common_a between_o they_o and_o the_o catholic_n in_o the_o church_n there_o remain_v nothing_o for_o they_o to_o do_v but_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n who_o example_n can_v no_o more_o be_v draw_v into_o consequence_n against_o the_o ordininarie_a authority_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n than_o the_o judgement_n that_o ptolomeus_n philometor_n 6._o king_n of_o egypt_n give_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o samaritan_n can_v form_v a_o precedent_n against_o the_o ordinary_a authority_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o of_o the_o sacerdotal_a college_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n the_o fowrth_n that_o the_o cause_n question_v in_o this_o process_n be_v not_o a_o cause_n of_o right_n and_o that_o shall_v be_v prove_v by_o ecclesiastical_a mean_n such_o as_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o father_n but_o a_o question_n of_o fact_n and_o whereof_o the_o hypothesis_n be_v mingle_v with_o accessory_n that_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n and_o can_v not_o be_v examine_v by_o ecclesiastical_a mean_n only_o but_o must_v be_v justify_v by_o human_a and_o secular_a mean_n as_o the_o confront_v of_o witness_n the_o act_n of_o notary_n yea_o pagan_a and_o heathen_a one_o the_o record_n of_o clerk_n 162._o and_o even_o the_o application_n of_o question_n and_o corporal_a torture_n for_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v principal_o ground_v upon_o the_o frame_n of_o a_o false_a letter_n that_o they_o have_v forge_v against_o felix_n bishop_n of_o aptunge_v for_o the_o examination_n whereof_o there_o must_v be_v a_o secular_a and_o proconsulary_a cecilian_a judgement_n interpose_v between_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v between_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o of_o arles_n to_o convince_v the_o forger_n of_o the_o falsehood_n by_o the_o application_n of_o 152._o rack_n and_o torture_n we_o have_v undertake_v say_v saint_n austin_n the_o defence_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o cecilianus_n although_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o 162._o church_n that_o we_o may_v make_v their_o calumny_n appear_v even_o in_o that_o and_o again_o speak_v of_o the_o torture_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o scrivener_n ingentius_fw-la or_o uigentius_fw-la to_o make_v he_o confess_v whether_o he_o have_v falsify_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o aedile_n alfius_n cecilianus_n to_o felix_n bishop_n of_o aptunge_v the_o proconsul_n say_v he_o among_o the_o fearful_a cry_n of_o the_o usher_n and_o the_o bloody_a hand_n of_o the_o hangman_n will_v not_o have_v condemn_v a_o colleague_n of_o his_o be_v absent_a and_o the_o five_o that_o all_o the_o act_n that_o the_o donatists_n extort_a from_o the_o emperor_n in_o this_o 〈◊〉_d he_o protest_v they_o to_o be_v so_o many_o irregularity_n and_o nullity_n and_o so_o many_o unlawful_a enterprise_n unjust_a and_o extraordinary_a wherein_o he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v constrain_v against_o his_o will_n to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o passion_n and_o malice_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o in_o yield_v to_o they_o to_o assay_v to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o be_v so_o 〈◊〉_d from_o desire_v to_o have_v the_o example_n thereof_o serve_v for_o a_o law_n to_o the_o bishop_n as_o contrariwise_o he_o promise_v to_o ask_v the_o bishop_n pardon_n the_o history_n be_v this_o the_o donatist_n have_v accuse_v cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n of_o treason_n or_o communication_n with_o traitor_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o those_o that_o have_v deliver_v the_o holy_a book_n and_o the_o sacred_a vessel_n to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o fire_n in_o the_o persecution_n time_n yea_o even_o to_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o a_o traitor_n so_o do_v they_o entitle_v felix_n
council_n of_o africa_n the_o two_o and_o fortith_n canon_n epigonius_n bishop_n pronounce_v this_o among_o other_o thing_n i_o conceive_v that_o a_o people_n that_o have_v always_o be_v under_o the_o subjection_n of_o a_o bishop_n ibidem_fw-la and_o never_o have_v a_o proper_a bishop_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o have_v a_o bishop_n all_o which_o be_v say_v nevertheless_o with_o so_o much_o respect_n as_o the_o world_n shall_v know_v that_o we_o admire_v the_o great_a cardinal_n baronius_n even_o when_o we_o reprove_v he_o and_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o his_o dream_n be_v more_o learned_a than_o the_o clear_a sight_n of_o other_o the_o second_o question_n concern_v the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n in_o chief_a be_v about_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o consist_v in_o this_o whether_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v publish_v all_o the_o fifttie_a canon_n that_o be_v in_o the_o ordinary_a edition_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n which_o be_v the_o forty_o seven_o or_o whether_o it_o have_v publish_v but_o twenty_o one_o the_o new_a promulgator_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o african_a church_n will_v have_v it_o that_o it_o publish_v but_o 21._o among_o which_o that_o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v frame_v by_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v not_o comprehend_v and_o we_o contrariwise_o maintain_v that_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v publish_v all_o the_o fifty_o canon_n contain_v in_o the_o ordinary_a edition_n &_o among_o the_o rest_n that_o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n their_o pretence_n be_v ground_v upon_o two_o reason_n the_o one_o that_o there_o be_v but_o twenty_o one_o canon_n or_o few_o more_o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n insert_v into_o the_o african_a rhapsody_n among_o the_o which_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v none_o and_o the_o other_o that_o in_o the_o continuance_n of_o this_o canon_n it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o must_v communicate_v with_o pope_n boniface_n and_o with_o other_o bishop_n beyond_o sea_n which_o boniface_n be_v of_o the_o time_n not_o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o of_o the_o six_o to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o their_o reason_n we_o answer_v that_o whereas_o they_o say_v there_o be_v but_o twenty_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o rhapsody_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n it_o be_v because_o the_o rapsodist_n as_o it_o have_v above_o appear_v have_v insert_v there_o but_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o have_v add_v some_o amplification_n or_o modification_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n and_o have_v not_o set_v in_o those_o that_o have_v first_o be_v institute_v in_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n and_o have_v be_v but_o repeat_v in_o the_o three_o of_o carthage_n among_o which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o thirtith_n canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n who_o quotation_n remain_v to_o we_o in_o 30._o these_o word_n what_o be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n and_o beside_o which_o no_o other_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o second_o reason_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n who_o say_v that_o the_o fifty_o canon_n contain_v in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n can_v be_v all_o of_o this_o council_n and_o particulaaly_a the_o canon_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o pope_n boniface_n who_o be_v long_a time_n after_o we_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o original_a canon_n of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n wherein_o this_o mention_n be_v find_v of_o pope_n boniface_n but_o in_o the_o repetition_n that_o be_v make_v of_o the_o same_o canon_n in_o the_o collection_n of_o the_o thirty_o three_o canon_n attribute_v to_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o pope_n boniface_n from_o whence_o certain_a ignorant_a exemplifier_n have_v take_v it_o away_o &_o make_v it_o retrograde_a in_o form_n of_o a_o diverse_a read_n in_o the_o margin_n of_o some_o of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n &_o the_o other_o that_o if_o this_o continuance_n be_v of_o the_o original_a text_n of_o the_o canon_n it_o must_v have_v be_v read_v syricius_n &_o not_o bonifacius_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o canon_n follow_v where_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o a_o other_o matter_n say_v it_o 48._o 〈◊〉_d be_v conclude_v that_o we_o shall_v consult_v with_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n cyricius_n and_o simplicianus_n and_o because_o that_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o a_o little_a after_o cyricius_n who_o die_v six_o month_n after_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v already_o make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n comformable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n more_o than_o fifteen_o year_n before_o boniface_n and_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o the_o father_n of_o the_o exup_n six_o council_n of_o carthage_n whereat_o the_o pope_n legate_n assist_v can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o by_o mean_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o more_o need_n to_o demand_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n in_o this_o regard_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o solve_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n but_o we_o must_v propound_v our_o own_o the_o 〈◊〉_d then_o that_o we_o make_v to_o convince_v that_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v publish_v the_o fifty_o canon_n that_o be_v in_o the_o ordinary_a edition_n and_o among_o other_o that_o of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v ground_v upon_o four_o reason_n the_o firstreason_n be_v that_o the_o twelve_o council_n of_o toledo_n which_o be_v hold_v near_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o cit_v the_o 42_o the_o 4._o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o these_o word_n in_o the_o 42_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o africa_n it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o people_n that_o have_v be_v always_o subject_a to_o a_o diocese_n shall_v receive_v no_o other_o bishop_n for_o bishop_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a word_n of_o the_o two_o &_o fortith_n canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o we_o 〈◊〉_d in_o our_o haude_n the_o second_o that_o in_o the_o repetition_n of_o twenty_o three_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o cesarius_n &_o atticus_n the_o six_o of_o the_o calend_n of_o september_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o african_a rhapsody_n there_o be_v a_o canon_n repeat_v which_o say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v also_o lawful_a to_o read_v the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n which_o canon_n be_v bind_v by_o the_o adverbe_n alsoe_o to_o 13._o some_o canon_n from_o whence_o it_o have_v be_v separate_v can_v have_v no_o relation_n but_o to_o the_o canon_n that_o forbid_v any_o other_o scripture_n but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n and_o consequent_o suppose_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v be_v publish_v in_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o the_o consulship_n of_o atticus_n and_o cesarius_n which_o be_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o that_o it_o have_v be_v omit_v in_o the_o rhapsody_n because_o it_o report_v none_o but_o those_o canon_n that_o have_v add_v some_o amplification_n or_o diminution_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n which_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n can_v not_o see_v for_o the_o impediment_n that_o be_v give_v he_o by_o the_o vicious_a collocation_n that_o the_o exemplifier_n of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n have_v make_v of_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v after_o the_o consulship_n of_o stelicon_n which_o they_o have_v interpose_v between_o the_o exordium_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o atticus_n and_o cesarius_n and_o the_o first_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n a_o thing_n which_o give_v he_o occasion_n to_o think_v that_o all_o the_o thirty_o two_o canon_n follow_v be_v of_o the_o council_n celebrate_v after_o stilicon_n consulship_n whereas_o the_o 401._o twenty_o three_o first_o be_v of_o the_o council_n celebrate_v under_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n as_o we_o will_v prove_v hereafter_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o date_n and_o by_o council_n confer_v of_o the_o greek_a edition_n and_o as_o it_o be_v
confirm_v also_o by_o the_o fowrteenth_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n which_o make_v mention_n of_o syricius_n and_o of_o simplicianus_n which_o be_v not_o bishop_n together_o but_o under_o the_o consulship_n of_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n the_o three_o reason_n be_v that_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la cit_v these_o two_o canon_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n and_o that_o of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o martyr_n as_o two_o consequent_a canon_n and_o the_o one_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o forty_o five_o and_o the_o other_o of_o the_o forty_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o these_o word_n that_o 229._o there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n canon_n fifty_o six_o and_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n canon_n forty_o five_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v also_o lawful_a to_o read_v the_o martyr_n passion_n on_o the_o day_n of_o their_o martyrdom_n the_o council_n of_o carthage_n canon_n forty_o six_o which_o can_v be_v mean_v but_o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o well_o because_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n contain_v but_o thirty_o three_o canon_n as_o because_o the_o last_o of_o these_o two_o canon_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o that_o there_o be_v but_o only_o in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o they_o be_v couch_v one_o next_o after_o the_o other_o and_o the_o fowrth_n final_o because_o saint_n austin_n teach_v us._n that_o the_o first_o among_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n wherein_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v publish_v be_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o not_o the_o six_o for_o he_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o quintianus_n that_o in_o the_o same_o council_n where_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v enter_v it_o be_v also_o ordain_v that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o usurp_v the_o clerk_n of_o a_o other_o bishop_n i_o be_o amaze_v say_v he_o that_o thou_o do_v admonish_v i_o to_o command_v 235._o that_o those_o that_o come_v from_o your_o quarter_n into_o our_o monastery_n shall_v not_o be_v receive_v that_o that_o which_o have_v be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n by_o we_o may_v be_v observe_v and_o that_o thou_o remember_v not_o that_o in_o the_o same_o council_n it_o be_v determine_v what_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n then_o review_v this_o council_n and_o bring_v to_o thy_o memory_n all_o thing_n that_o thou_o shall_v read_v there_o and_o thou_o shall_v perceive_v it_o be_v so_o decide_v only_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o not_o of_o the_o laity_n that_o come_v from_o other_o diocese_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v into_o our_o monastery_n not_o that_o there_o be_v a_o word_n of_o a_o monastery_n but_o because_o it_o have_v be_v decree_v that_o none_o shall_v receive_v the_o clerk_n of_o a_o other_o now_o the_o canon_n that_o prohibit_v bishop_n to_o receive_v 21._o the_o clerk_n of_o other_o bishop_n be_v in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o not_o in_o the_o six_o moreover_o he_o add_v that_o in_o a_o late_a council_n it_o have_v be_v ordain_v that_o those_o that_o depart_v from_o a_o monastery_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o be_v clerk_n or_o superintendent_o of_o a_o other_o monastery_n in_o the_o council_n say_v he_o where_o it_o be_v determine_v what_o be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n ibidem_fw-la there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o a_o monastery_n only_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o none_o shall_v receive_v the_o clerk_n of_o a_o other_o but_o in_o a_o late_a council_n it_o have_v be_v decree_v that_o those_o that_o have_v retire_v themselves_o or_o have_v be_v expel_v out_o of_o any_o monastery_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v clerk_n in_o any_o other_o place_n or_o superintend_v any_o minastery_n which_o show_v again_o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v publish_v where_o of_o saint_n austin_n speak_v be_v the_o three_o council_n and_o not_o the_o six_o for_o the_o canon_n that_o forbid_v to_o receive_v a_o religious_a man_n that_o retire_v from_o a_o monastery_n and_o to_o make_v he_o clerk_n or_o superintendent_n of_o a_o other_o monastery_n be_v institute_v in_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o precede_v the_o six_o near_o eighteen_o year_n the_o three_o controversy_n be_v concern_v the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n 13._o hold_v under_o the_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n and_o of_o eutychianus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o next_o year_n after_o the_o consulship_n of_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n the_o which_o not_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n but_o the_o new_a publisher_n of_o the_o greek_a edition_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n race_n from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n move_v thereto_o because_o it_o be_v not_o insert_v into_o that_o rapsodie_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n that_o we_o call_v the_o african_a council_n now_o this_o conjecture_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o confutation_n for_o beside_o that_o the_o collection_n that_o we_o call_v the_o african_a council_n be_v far_o from_o comprehend_v either_o in_o general_a all_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n witness_v the_o council_n of_o suffetula_n the_o council_n of_o septimunica_fw-la the_o council_n of_o marazan_n the_o council_n of_o tusdra_n the_o council_n of_o macri_n the_o council_n breu._n of_o zelles_n the_o council_n of_o tunis_n the_o council_n of_o juca_n or_o rather_o tuca_n cite_v by_o 2._o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la which_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o african_a 11._o rhapsody_n or_o in_o particular_a all_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o principal_o if_o 44._o 23._o we_o believe_v the_o edition_n of_o the_o same_o ferandus_fw-la who_o allege_v the_o five_o canon_n 76._o of_o the_o fifty_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n there_o be_v two_o evident_a reason_n 65._o 61._o wherefore_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v insert_v into_o 26._o the_o collection_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n that_o we_o call_v the_o african_a counsel_n 13._o the_o one_o that_o he_o that_o collect_v they_o have_v restrain_v himself_o of_o deliberate_a purpose_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o division_n of_o the_o nintie_n nine_o canon_n of_o his_o rapsodie_n which_o be_v the_o last_o of_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o to_o find_v the_o reckon_n just_o he_o divide_v in_o two_o to_o make_v but_o one_o century_n of_o african_a canon_n within_o which_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n which_o only_o contain_v a_o hundred_o and_o four_o canon_n can_v not_o enter_v and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n have_v prescribe_v the_o law_n under_o which_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a person_n of_o africa_n ought_v to_o be_v promote_v to_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o inserte_n it_o into_o the_o body_n of_o this_o rapsodie_n to_o keep_v they_o from_o wander_v from_o the_o matter_n for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o particular_o bishop_n be_v oblige_v to_o keep_v it_o in_o their_o hand_n to_o those_o two_o reason_n i_o will_v yet_o annex_v two_o other_o which_o convince_v that_o it_o be_v true_o ancient_a and_o due_a to_o the_o age_n whereto_o we_o attribute_v it_o the_o one_o be_v that_o the_o thing_n there_o decide_v agree_v whole_o to_o the_o estate_n of_o africa_n in_o s._n aug._n time_n as_o the_o profession_n which_o this_o council_n oblige_v bishop_n to_o make_v come_v to_o the_o bishop_n sea_n that_o oneself_o same_o 1._o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v become_v ill_o by_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o will_n to_o exclude_v the_o manichee_n as_o the_o belief_n that_o be_v exact_v from_o they_o that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n one_o be_v save_v to_o exclude_v the_o 84._o donatist_n as_o the_o prohibition_n that_o he_o make_v to_o drive_v the_o gentill_n or_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o heretic_n out_o of_o the_o church_n before_o the_o mass_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o dimission_n of_o the_o catechuman_n which_o show_v that_o this_o council_n be_v hold_v while_o paganism_n last_v yet_o among_o the_o province_n 44._o of_o the_o christian_n or_o as_o the_o canon_n that_o he_o institute_v that_o the_o clerk_n shall_v not_o nourish_v either_o their_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n or_o their_o beard_n 52._o and_o may_v get_v their_o meat_n drink_v and_o cloth_n by_o a_o trade_n or_o by_o husbandry_n without_o derogate_a from_o their_o
national_a council_n be_v assemble_v in_o africa_n and_o this_o i_o incline_v to_o believe_v for_o ten_o reason_n among_o other_o the_o first_o reason_n be_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n to_o pope_n celestine_n be_v there_o insert_v which_o be_v make_v in_o a_o council_n hold_v express_o for_o the_o second_o process_n of_o apiarius_n and_o after_o the_o last_o caelest_n voyage_n of_o faustinus_n into_o africa_n as_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n our_o holy_a brother_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n faustinus_n come_v to_o we_o we_o have_v assemble_v a_o council_n and_o have_v believe_v that_o the_o aim_n of_o his_o come_n have_v be_v that_o as_o by_o his_o procurement_n apiarius_n have_v be_v once_o before_o restore_v to_o the_o priesthood_n so_o now_o by_o his_o labour_n he_o may_v be_v purge_v from_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o tabracenians_n now_o this_o council_n that_o we_o call_v the_o nine_o be_v hold_v long_o after_o the_o fixth_n &_o seven_o which_o have_v be_v celebrate_v under_o boniface_n and_o to_o sale_n that_o it_o be_v in_o this_o nine_o that_o the_o rapsodie_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n be_v make_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o can_v subsist_v for_o the_o father_n will_v not_o have_v be_v content_v to_o insert_v heereinto_o their_o epistle_n only_o but_o will_v have_v add_v to_o it_o somewhat_o of_o the_o history_n and_o of_o the_o date_n of_o their_o council_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o after_o the_o quotation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n which_o be_v the_o first_o who_o date_n be_v register_v in_o this_o rhapsody_n follow_v these_o word_n the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n 1._o be_v not_o here_o describe_v because_o the_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v therein_o ordain_v be_v above_o insert_v which_o word_n can_v have_v relation_n either_o to_o the_o rhapsody_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n or_o to_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n which_o contain_v more_o than_o forty_o canon_n be_v insert_v neither_o into_o the_o rapsodie_n which_o begin_v with_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n and_o comprehend_v nothing_o that_o precede_v it_o nor_o in_o the_o thirty_o three_o canon_n attribure_v to_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o exemplifier_n or_o rapsodist_n which_o remitt_v the_o reader_n to_o find_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n to_o the_o former_a collection_n of_o the_o counsel_n the_o three_o reason_n be_v that_o in_o the_o quotation_n of_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d the_o fixth_n of_o the_o calend_n of_o julie_n under_o the_o consulship_n of_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n there_o be_v these_o word_n whosoever_o will_v search_v the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n shall_v 1._o find_v they_o in_o the_o authentic_a all_o copy_n a_o thing_n which_o show_v it_o be_v a_o particular_a collection_n and_o not_o a_o council_n that_o speak_v the_o four_o reason_n be_v that_o at_o the_o head_n of_o the_o sixtith_n one_o chapter_n after_o these_o word_n under_o the_o consulship_n 61._o of_o the_o noble_a consul_n stelicon_n for_o the_o second_o time_n &_o arthemius_n the_o ten_o of_o the_o calend_n of_o september_n at_o carthage_n in_o the_o basilicke_a of_o the_o second_o region_n these_o follow_v i_o have_v not_o transcribe_v from_o the_o one_o end_n to_o the_o other_o the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o more_o regard_n 〈◊〉_d of_o time_n than_o any_o general_a ordinance_n but_o for_o the_o instruction_n 〈◊〉_d the_o studious_a i_o have_v digest_v from_o they_o a_o brief_a summary_n fron_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o collection_n be_v make_v by_o a_o particular_a compiler_n for_o that_o the_o greek_n have_v translate_v it_o in_o the_o three_o person_n &_o in_o steed_n of_o these_o word_n graec._n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o studious_a have_v turn_v it_o of_o thing_n studious_o ordain_v 69._o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o steed_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v suppose_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o corruption_n too_o apparent_a the_o five_o reason_n be_v that_o in_o the_o thirteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n which_o be_v the_o forty_o seven_o of_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n the_o canon_n say_v in_o either_o edition_n likewise_o also_o that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o read_v the_o 47._o the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n which_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o former_a canon_n which_o be_v that_o reconciliation_n shall_v not_o be_v refuse_v to_o comedian_n but_o it_o be_v a_o train_n that_o have_v be_v tear_v from_o his_o head_n that_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n 46_o have_v omit_v and_o that_o the_o greek_a have_v transfer_v from_o his_o place_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o canon_n that_o forbid_v other_o scripture_n than_o those_o that_o be_v canonical_a to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n as_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n entire_a where_o these_o two_o canon_n be_v couch_v the_o one_o after_o the_o other_o and_o by_o ferandus_fw-la his_o breviarie_n where_o they_o be_v quote_v as_o two_o canon_n 47._o follow_v one_o a_o other_o in_o these_o word_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n title_n fifty_o six_o and_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n title_n forty_o five_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a also_o to_o read_v the_o 9_o martyr_n passion_n in_o the_o anniversary_n day_n of_o their_o martyrdom_n council_n of_o carthage_n title_n forty_o six_o a_o thing_n that_o show_v that_o this_o collection_n have_v be_v make_v by_o a_o particular_a rapsodist_n who_o insert_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n into_o his_o rhapsody_n have_v omit_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n forasmuch_o as_o this_o canon_n be_v make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n &_o be_v but_o repeat_v in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n &_o have_v content_v himself_o with_o insert_v that_o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v add_v to_o it_o to_o wit_n the_o permission_n of_o read_v also_o in_o the_o church_n the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n the_o six_o reason_n be_v that_o of_o the_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o ordain_v 5._o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n say_v that_o if_o any_o one_o have_v confess_v that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o civil_a confession_n a_o crime_n to_o he_o alone_o and_o that_o he_o after_o deny_v it_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o injury_n if_o credit_n be_v not_o give_v to_o his_o only_a testimony_n and_o that_o if_o the_o bishop_n move_v with_o the_o scruple_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o he_o that_o so_o deny_v as_o long_o as_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o communicate_v with_o he_o other_z bishop_n shall_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o bishop_n the_o rapsodist_n have_v make_v two_o different_a canon_n to_o wit_n the_o nintie_a nine_o &_o hùdredth_n of_o his_o rhapsody_n and_o to_o perfect_v the_o construction_n of_o the_o nintie_n nine_o which_o otherwise_o be_v without_o sense_n have_v add_v these_o word_n that_o he_o shall_v notwithstanding_o secret_o interdict_v he_o the_o communion_n till_o he_o conform_v himself_o which_o be_v direct_o against_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n see_v here_o the_o word_n of_o the_o nintie_n nine_o if_o a_o bishop_n say_v that_o any_o one_o have_v confess_v a_o crime_n to_o he_o alone_o and_o edit_n that_o he_o deny_v it_o and_o will_v not_o do_v penance_n for_o it_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o particular_a 99_o injury_n that_o credit_n be_v not_o give_v to_o he_o alone_o and_o if_o move_v with_o the_o scruple_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o he_o that_o so_o deny_v let_v he_o 〈◊〉_d interdict_v he_o the_o communion_n 〈◊〉_d till_o he_o conform_v himself_o and_o behold_v here_o the_o word_n of_o the_o hundred_o while_o a_o bishop_n communicate_v not_o with_o 100_o his_o excommunicate_v diocesan_n 〈◊〉_d not_o the_o other_o bishop_n communicate_v with_o such_o a_o bishop_n a_o error_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n will_v never_o have_v commit_v if_o themselves_o have_v compile_v this_o rhapsody_n see_v it_o be_v themselves_o that_o have_v compose_v the_o whole_a canon_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v that_o the_o late_a exemplifier_n perceive_v this_o fault_n have_v reunite_v the_o two_o canon_n in_o one_o and_o have_v report_v the_o canon_n complete_a as_o it_o be_v couch_v in_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o ancient_a latin_a rhapsody_n make_v two_o canon_n of_o it_o as_o it_o appears_a
little_a after_o the_o six_o of_o carthage_n none_o constitute_v in_o the_o bond_n of_o marriage_n can_v be_v admit_v to_o priesthood_n without_o promise_n of_o conversion_n second_o it_o 2._o appear_v by_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o african_a church_n which_o concern_v the_o same_o matter_n it_o have_v please_v say_v the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n that_o graec._n bishop_n priest_n deacon_n etc._n etc._n practice_n entire_a continence_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n that_o what_o 3._o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v or_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a edition_n give_v by_o tradition_n ibid._n and_o antiquity_n itself_o observe_v we_o also_o shall_v observe_v and_o again_o it_o 3._o have_v please_v that_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n or_o other_o that_o handle_v the_o sacrament_n shall_v live_v chaste_o and_o abstain_v evenfrom_o their_o own_o wife_n and_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n it_o have_v please_v that_o priest_n and_o deacon_n according_a to_o their_o own_o statute_n or_o as_o the_o best_a copy_n have_v it_o according_a to_o the_o former_a statute_n shall_v abstain_v from_o their_o own_o wife_n it_o appear_v three_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o especial_o the_o african_a ult._n who_o have_v live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o counsel_n that_o the_o ministry_n say_v saint_n ambrose_n must_v be_v preserve_v inviolate_a and_o immaculate_a without_o defile_v it_o with_o any_o conjugal_a embrace_n you_o know_v it_o you_o that_o with_o integrity_n of_o body_n 1._o and_o incorruption_n of_o modesty_n ab_v ayning_a yourselves_o even_o from_o the_o use_n of_o marriage_n have_v receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o sacred_a deaconship_n and_o saint_n hierom_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n be_v choose_v either_o virgin_n or_o in_o widowhood_n or_o at_o least_o be_v after_o ult._n their_o priesthood_n eternal_o chaste_a and_o saint_n augustine_n the_o soul_n and_o pen_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n we_o have_v say_v he_o accustom_v to_o propound_v to_o lay_v man_n that_o have_v put_v away_o their_o wife_n the_o continence_n of_o clergy_n man_n who_o be_v often_o take_v by_o force_n and_o against_o their_o will_n to_o undergo_v that_o charge_n and_o have_v accept_v it_o be_v be_v it_o with_o god_n help_v lawful_o even_o to_o the_o end_n we_o say_v to_o they_o what_o will_v become_v of_o you_o if_o you_o be_v constrain_v and_o force_v by_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o people_n to_o undergo_v this_o charge_n will_v you_o not_o chaste_o preserve_v the_o office_n wherewith_o you_o be_v charge_v instant_o convert_n yourselves_o to_o beseech_v of_o god_n such_o strength_n as_o demost_a before_o your_o never_o think_v of_o whereto_o i_o may_v yet_o add_v the_o ancient_a greek_a doctor_n 9_o as_o eusebius_n who_o write_v now_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o divine_a word_n do_v necessary_o 59_o embrace_v abstinence_n from_o marriage_n to_o attend_v to_o a_o better_a imploymeut_n practise_v a_o generation_n of_o spiritual_a and_o incorporal_a child_n or_o as_o saint_n epiphanius_n that_o cry_v out_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n receive_v not_o he_o that_o have_v be_v but_o once_o marry_v and_o converse_v still_o with_o his_o wife_n and_o beget_v child_n for_o deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n but_o because_o here_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o african_a &_o notof_o the_o greek_a church_n breu._n i_o set_v the_o greek_a testimony_n aside_o it_o appear_v four_a by_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la a_o african_a canonist_n of_o above_o 1100._o year_n antiquity_n who_o in_o his_o 109._o epitome_n of_o the_o canon_n register_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o these_o word_n that_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n shall_v abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n and_o by_o cresconius_n a_o african_a canonist_n likewise_o &_o of_o near_a a_o thousand_o grec_n year_n antiquity_n who_o register_n it_o in_o these_o word_n that_o the_o priestly_a 7._o and_o leviticall_a order_n ought_v to_o have_v no_o cohabitation_n with_o woman_n it_o appear_v fist_o by_o the_o proper_a text_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o plain_o comprehend_v bishop_n 12_o which_o nevertheless_o the_o greek_n exclude_v from_o all_o conjugal_a act_n and_o to_o who_o this_o condition_n of_o serve_v by_o turn_n and_o alternative_a week_n can_v nicen._n agree_v it_o appear_v beside_o this_o by_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o say_v that_o reader_n when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o manhood_n 16._o shall_v be_v constrain_v either_o to_o marry_v or_o profess_v chastity_n a_o thing_n which_o necessary_o show_v that_o the_o use_n of_o marriage_n be_v whole_o prohibit_v to_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacons_n and_o final_o it_o appear_v by_o andrew_n gesnerus_fw-la minister_n of_o zurich_n and_o the_o german_a centuriator_n be_v ashamed_a of_o this_o falsehood_n for_o gesnerus_fw-la interpret_n the_o greek_a translation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v turn_v it_o into_o these_o word_n it_o have_v please_v that_o edit_fw-la bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n according_a to_o their_o statute_n shall_v abstain_v even_o andr._n from_o their_o wife_n and_o the_o centuriator_n of_o germany_n epitomize_v the_o same_o council_n of_o carthage_n report_v it_o in_o these_o word_n that_o the_o sacerdot_n all_o and_o ceatur_fw-la and_o diaconall_a order_n shall_v abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o 829_o matter_n be_v treat_v of_o more_o large_o in_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o conference_n of_o fontainebleau_n where_o we_o confute_v the_o fable_n of_o paphnucius_fw-la report_v by_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n novatian_n author_n from_o who_o the_o late_a greek_n have_v borrow_v the_o occasion_n of_o their_o fall_n and_o expound_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o gangre_n which_o seem_v to_o favour_v they_o it_o shall_v suffice_v i_o for_o a_o end_n of_o this_o advertisement_n to_o remit_v the_o reader_n thereunto_o the_o second_o example_n of_o infidelity_n shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o twenty_o four_o canon_n of_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n which_o be_v the_o twenty_o four_o of_o those_o thirty_o three_o latin_a canon_n whereof_o the_o collection_n be_v entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n have_v eclipse_v from_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n receive_v in_o africa_n the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n now_o that_o this_o subctraction_n be_v a_o notable_a falsehood_n appear_v by_o six_o unreprochable_a '_o means_n it_o appear_v first_o by_o all_o the_o latin_a copy_n as_o well_o print_v as_o manuscript_n of_o the_o collection_n entitle_v innumeri_fw-la the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o which_o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n be_v express_v by_o name_n it_o appear_v second_o by_o the_o forty_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n from_o whence_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v be_v extract_v which_o mention_n particular_o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n it_o appear_v three_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n insert_v into_o saint_n augustins_n second_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n where_o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n be_v express_o contain_v and_o to_o which_o saint_n augustine_n for_o a_o impediment_n that_o the_o number_n shall_v not_o be_v vary_v 8._o by_o any_o addition_n or_o subtraction_n set_v to_o this_o seal_n in_o these_o forty_o four_o book_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v determine_v and_o again_o repeat_v the_o same_o seal_n in_o the_o register_n of_o his_o retraction_n in_o these_o word_n in_o the_o place_n 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n where_o i_o have_v write_v in_o 4._o these_o forty_o four_o book_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v determine_v i_o make_v use_v of_o the_o word_n old_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o speech_n which_o the_o church_n practise_v at_o this_o day_n but_o the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o call_v none_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o that_o which_o be_v give_v in_o the_o mount_n sinai_n it_o appear_v four_a by_o the_o other_o write_n where_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o maccabee_n as_o when_o 36._o he_o say_v in_o the_o eighteen_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n among_o the_o volume_n sever_v from_o this_o rank_n be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n which_o not_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o church_n hold_v for_o canonical_a and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n against_o the_o epistle_n of_o gaudentius_n the_o donatist_n the_o scripture_n entitle_v from_o the_o macchabee_n the_o jew_n 23._o do_v not_o hold_v as_o the_o law_n the_o prophett_n and_o the_o psalm_n which_o our_o
lord_n allege_v for_o his_o testimony_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o have_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n not_o unprofitable_a if_o it_o be_v read_v or_o hear_v sober_o in_o which_o passage_n that_o saint_n augustine_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n hold_v not_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o maccabee_n in_o the_o same_o rank_n as_o the_o law_n the_o psalm_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v not_o to_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o maccabee_n for_o the_o jew_n do_v no_o more_o hold_v 14._o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n in_o the_o same_o degree_n of_o the_o law_n the_o psalm_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o our_o lord_n have_v no_o more_o allege_v it_o among_o the_o testimony_n then_o that_o of_o the_o maccabee_n and_o nevertheless_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n have_v merit_v after_o so_o long_a a_o continuance_n of_o year_n to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o reader_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v hear_v by_o all_o christian_n even_o from_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o low_a layman_n faithful_a penitent_n and_o catechuman_n with_o the_o reverence_n of_o divine_a authority_n and_o ibid._n again_o all_o the_o doctor_n near_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v use_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n have_v believe_v that_o they_o make_v use_v of_o none_o but_o a_o divine_a testimony_n but_o the_o reason_n why_o saint_n augustine_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n hold_v not_o the_o scripure_a of_o the_o machaebees_n in_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o law_n the_o prophett_n and_o the_o psalm_n be_v to_o show_v the_o donatist_n who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o make_v use_v of_o she_o own_o weapon_n to_o oppose_v she_o that_o this_o scripture_n have_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o canon_n not_o by_o the_o 23._o jew_n but_o by_o the_o church_n they_o can_v not_o employ_v it_o against_o the_o sense_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n not_o unprofitablie_o provide_v it_o be_v read_v sober_o it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o end_n to_o diminish_v the_o credit_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v give_v to_o it_o but_o to_o repress_v the_o furious_a consequence_n that_o the_o donatist_n infer_v upon_o it_o and_o signify_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o provide_v it_o be_v read_v with_o settle_a sense_n and_o not_o with_o madness_n and_o frenzy_n as_o the_o donatist_n read_v it_o who_o take_v occasion_n from_o the_o example_n of_o samson_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o from_o the_o example_n of_o razias_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o maccabee_n who_o zeal_n and_o not_o his_o act_n be_v commend_v to_o kill_v and_o precipitate_v themselves_o which_o he_o confirm_v a_o while_n ibid._n after_o in_o these_o word_n we_o ought_v not_o then_o to_o approve_v by_o our_o consent_n all_o thing_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o have_v be_v do_v by_o man_n even_o adorn_v with_o praise_n by_o god_n own_o testimony_n but_o to_o mingle_v our_o consideration_n with_o discretion_n bring_v with_o we_o judgement_n not_o of_o our_o authority_n but_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o divine_a scripture_n which_o permit_v not_o we_o to_o praise_v or_o imitate_v all_o the_o action_n even_o of_o those_o of_o who_o the_o scripture_n give_v good_a and_o glorious_a testimony_n if_o they_o have_v do_v any_o thing_n that_o have_v not_o be_v well_o do_v or_o that_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o present_a time_n it_o appear_v sifthly_a by_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n that_o pope_n testam_fw-la innocent_a the_o first_o time_n fellow_n with_o s._n austin_n send_v to_o exuperius_n bishop_n of_o tholosa_n where_o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n be_v express_o contain_v for_o whereas_o pope_n gelasius_n in_o renew_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n make_v use_v of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o maccabee_n but_o for_o one_o only_a book_n it_o be_v because_o he_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n 14._o who_o reckon_v the_o first_o and_o second_o of_o the_o maccabee_n for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o book_n and_o whereas_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a in_o his_o commentary_n 17._o upon_o job_n compound_v near_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o african_a father_n cite_v the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n add_v although_o not_o canonical_a yet_o write_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v because_o the_o first_o draught_n of_o this_o commentary_n be_v make_v in_o the_o east_n for_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o yet_o pope_n when_o he_o first_o compose_v the_o comentarie_a up_o on_o job_n but_o a_o simple_a deacon_n exercise_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o nuntio_n at_o constantinople_n among_o the_o greek_n for_o this_o occasion_n then_o speak_v in_o the_o east_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n he_o add_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o case_n put_v and_o not_o grant_v if_o not_o canonical_a yet_o write_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o which_o if_o they_o be_v not_o canonical_a nevertheless_o have_v be_v write_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n it_o appear_v final_o by_o the_o very_a continuance_n of_o the_o african_a canon_n insert_v into_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n which_o be_v we_o have_v learn_v from_o our_o father_n that_o those_o be_v the_o book_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v 24._o 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n for_o not_o only_o all_o the_o ancient_a african_a church_n but_o also_o all_o the_o ancient_a western_a church_n have_v hold_v from_o age_n to_o age_n the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a as_o it_o appear_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o ancient_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d church_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n who_o call_v the_o maccabee_n 〈◊〉_d scripture_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o western_a 14._o church_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n who_o cry_v out_o moses_n say_v as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n and_o by_o that_o of_o the_o great_a defender_n delinq_fw-fr of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n lucifer_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d who_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o by_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o other_o who_o name_n i_o will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d particular_o to_o report_v only_o i_o will_v say_v in_o general_n that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d any_o latin_a author_n which_o take_v liberty_n to_o remove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n before_o saint_n hierome_n and_o ruffinus_n 〈◊〉_d he_o while_o he_o be_v his_o disciple_n whereupon_o there_o be_v three_o 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v make_v the_o first_o observation_n be_v that_o as_o saint_n hierome_n before_o the_o perfect_a maturity_n of_o be_v study_n for_o afterward_o he_o change_v his_o opinion_n eclipse_v from_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o history_n of_o the_o maccabee_n so_o do_v he_o also_o shake_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 8._o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o latin_a custom_n say_v he_o receive_v not_o the_o epistle_n 〈◊〉_d hebrew_n among_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o again_o if_o any_o one_o will_v alibi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d the_o epistle_n which_o under_o paul_n name_n have_v be_v write_v to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o 〈◊〉_d where_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n which_o be_v write_v to_o the_o hebrew_n though_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o latins_n doubt_v of_o it_o by_o which_o mean_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o saint_n 26._o hierome_n not_o yet_o full_o instruct_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o exclusion_n of_o one_o of_o these_o piece_n it_o be_v also_o available_a for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o other_o the_o second_o observation_n be_v that_o saint_n hierome_n 〈◊〉_d induce_v to_o remove_v this_o stone_n by_o the_o commerce_n that_o he_o have_v with_o 〈◊〉_d jew_n of_o palestina_n among_o who_o he_o inhabit_v and_o from_o who_o he_o 〈◊〉_d the_o hebrew_n letter_n for_o istdore_v bishop_n of_o sevilla_n who_o write_v a_o 〈◊〉_d year_n ago_o report_n that_o the_o jew_n in_o hate_n of_o our_o lord_n reject_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n the_o hebrew_n say_v isidore_n as_o some_o of_o 13._o 〈◊〉_d sage_n have_v note_v it_o receive_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n among_o the_o canonical_a 〈◊〉_d but_o after_o they_o have_v take_v christ_n and_o put_v he_o to_o deach_v remember_v that_o 〈◊〉_d be_v in_o the_o same_o book_n so_o many_o evident_a testimony_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n they_o make_v 〈◊〉_d together_o and_o lest_o we_o shall_v convince_v they_o of_o so_o manifest_a a_o 〈◊〉_d they_o
cut_v it_o of_o from_o the_o prophetical_a volume_n and_o prohibit_v they_o from_o read_v now_o the_o jew_n can_v have_v no_o fair_a colour_n to_o cut_v of_o the_o book_n of_o 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o 〈◊〉_d canon_n of_o esdras_n a_o thing_n which_o likewise_o oblige_v they_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o 〈◊〉_d other_o posthume_n book_n from_o the_o old_a restament_n so_o call_v i_o all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o have_v be_v write_v or_o publish_v since_o 〈◊〉_d of_o esdras_n and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o esdras_n as_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o tobias_n the_o book_n of_o judith_n and_o the_o two_o book_n of_o maccabee_n 〈◊〉_d these_o cause_n then_o saint_n hierome_n tie_v himself_o to_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o jew_n upon_o who_o text_n and_o with_o who_o help_n and_o particular_o of_o a_o certain_a rabbin_z called_z barabanus_fw-la or_o barhanina_n who_o ruffinus_n by_o 65._o way_n of_o reproach_n call_v barrabas_n he_o have_v make_v the_o translation_n of_o his_o bible_n not_o only_o exclude_v in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o king_n that_o he_o entitle_v the_o arm_a prologue_n and_o in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o proverb_n all_o the_o 115._o whole_a book_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o esdras_n as_o be_v wisdom_n ecclesiacticus_fw-la tobias_n judith_n and_o the_o maccabee_n but_o also_o in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o daniel_n reject_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n not_o comprehend_v in_o the_o text_n of_o the_o hebrowe_n as_o be_v the_o canticle_n of_o the_o three_o child_n and_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n and_o that_o of_o bel._n the_o book_n of_o daniel_n 120._o say_v he_o among_o the_o hebrew_n contain_v neiter_n the_o history_n of_o susanna_n nor_o the_o hymn_n of_o the_o three_o child_n nor_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o dragon_n of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o nevertheless_o because_o they_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n we_o have_v annex_v thereto_o but_o after_o have_v mark_v they_o with_o a_o obeliske_n which_o precede_v they_o and_o cut_v their_o throat_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o ruffinus_n be_v grow_v his_o enemy_n reproach_v he_o thus_o all_o those_o then_o that_o suppose_a 2._o susanna_n have_v furnish_v all_o marry_v and_o unmarried_a woman_n with_o a_o example_n of_o chastity_n have_v err_v it_o be_v not_o true_a all_o those_o that_o conceive_v that_o daniel_n yet_o a_o child_n have_v be_v fulfil_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o have_v 〈◊〉_d the_o adulterous_a elder_n have_v err_v it_o be_v not_o true_a and_o the_o whole_a church_n throughout_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o be_v still_o upon_o the_o earth_n as_o of_o those_o that_o be_v before_o our_o lord_n be_v they_o holy_a coufessor_n be_v they_o holy_a martyr_n who_o have_v sing_v in_o the_o church_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o hymn_n of_o the_o three_o child_n have_v all_o err_v and_o sunge_a false_a thing_n now_o then_o after_o four_o hundred_o year_n do_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o law_n buy_v with_o silver_n so_o 113._o he_o say_v because_o saint_n hierom_n have_v give_v money_n to_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v help_v by_o they_o in_o the_o edition_n of_o this_o bible_n come_v to_o we_o from_o the_o synagogue_n and_o the_o three_o observation_n final_o be_v that_o saint_n hierome_n be_v afterward_o more_o exact_o instruct_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n change_v his_o opinion_n and_o retract_v both_o in_o general_a and_o particular_a all_o that_o he_o have_v write_v in_o these_o three_o prologue_n for_o in_o his_o apology_n against_o ruffinus_n answer_v to_o his_o reproach_n about_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n and_o of_o the_o dragon_n of_o bel_n and_o of_o the_o canticle_n of_o the_o three_o child_n he_o say_v whereas_o i_o have_v report_v what_o the_o hebrew_n use_v to_o object_n against_o the_o history_n of_o 2._o susanna_n and_o the_o hymn_n of_o the_o three_o child_n and_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o dragon_n of_o bell_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n volume_n etc._n etc._n i_o have_v not_o explicate_v what_o i_o think_v but_o what_o the_o jew_n be_v accustom_v to_o say_v against_o us._n and_o in_o his_o preface_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o tobias_n the_o hebrew_n say_v he_o cut_n of_o the_o book_n of_o 100_o toby_n from_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n and_o again_o the_o ie_fw-fr alousie_n of_o the_o hebrew_n do_v accuse_v we_o and_o impute_v it_o to_o we_o that_o against_o their_o canon_n we_o transferr_v ibidem_fw-la the_o book_n of_o toby_n into_o the_o latin_a ear_n but_o i_o judge_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o displease_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o in_o the_o exposition_n upon_o the_o forty_o four_o psalm_n ruth_n hester_n and_o judith_n 140._o have_v be_v so_o glorious_a as_o they_o have_v give_v their_o name_n into_o the_o sacred_a volume_n and_o in_o his_o preface_n upon_o the_o history_n of_o indith_n the_o book_n of_o judith_n say_v he_o be_v read_v by_o the_o hebrew_n among_o the_o hagiograph_n who_o authority_n be_v esteem_v 〈◊〉_d less_o sufficient_a to_o decide_v contentious_a thing_n etc._n etc._n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v read_v to_o have_v reckon_v it_o among_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o have_v obey_v your_o demand_n word_n which_o plain_o retract_v what_o he_o have_v say_v in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o proverb_n as_o then_o the_o church_n read_v judith_n and_o toby_n and_o the_o 115._o maccabee_n but_o receave_v they_o not_o among_o the_o canonical_a book_n so_o may_v she_o read_v wisdom_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n but_o not_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n and_o which_o can_v be_v avoid_v by_o answer_v that_o the_o word_n holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o there_o signify_v canonical_a for_o the_o opposition_n that_o he_o make_v of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n to_o the_o jew_n which_o esteem_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n among_o the_o hagiograph_n book_n 23._o who_o authority_n be_v repute_v less_o sufficient_a to_o divide_v contentious_a thing_n stopp_n the_o mouth_n of_o that_o delusion_n and_o final_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n compound_v long_o after_o the_o prologue_n arm_v he_o set_v the_o history_n 17._o of_o the_o maccabee_n among_o the_o canonical_a book_n the_o scripture_n say_v he_o report_v that_o alexander_n king_n of_o the_o macedonian_n come_v out_o from_o the_o land_n of_o cethim_n which_o some_o latin_n that_o follow_v be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o befall_v that_o they_o 6._o be_v separate_v from_o the_o common_a voice_n of_o the_o western_a church_n for_o although_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o late_a latin_a doctor_n as_o alcimus_n bellator_n 〈◊〉_d isidorus_n have_v follow_v the_o catalogue_n of_o s._n aus_n &_o of_o the_o three_o casiodor_n ibid._n council_n of_o carthage_n and_o set_v the_o history_n of_o the_o maccabee_n among_o the_o 〈◊〉_d canonical_a book_n yea_o that_o some_o of_o they_o as_o bellator_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n the_o first_o have_v illustrate_v it_o with_o commentary_n nevertheless_o some_o other_o not_o know_v that_o s._n hierome_n have_v change_v his_o opinion_n have_v tie_v themselves_o to_o that_o of_o s._n hierome_n but_o in_o 6._o sum_n whatsoever_o the_o late_a latin_a doctor_n have_v do_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n never_o any_o before_o s._n hierome_n have_v remove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o six_o posthume_n book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o whereas_o s._n hilary_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o psalm_n compose_v or_o rather_o as_o s._n hierome_n say_v translate_v by_o he_o out_o of_o origen_n whilst_o he_o be_v in_o the_o ad_fw-la east_n write_v that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v reduce_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n either_o to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o twétie_n two_o letter_n of_o the_o hebrew_n alphabet_n or_o by_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o book_n of_o judith_n &_o of_o tobias_n to_o the_o number_n of_o twenty_o four_o letter_n of_o the_o 141._o greek_a alphabet_n beside_o that_o these_o mark_n be_v not_o the_o note_n of_o s._n hilary_n psalm_n but_o the_o note_n of_o origen_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o first_o psalm_n that_o s._n hilary_n have_v transcribe_v in_o part_n into_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o psalm_n he_o mean_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n not_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n whereof_o some_o to_o wit_n
the_o confession_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n be_v both_o joint_o true_a but_o in_o different_a sense_n for_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o causal_n foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n rather_o than_o upon_o that_o of_o any_o other_o apostle_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o primacy_n of_o this_o confession_n not_o proceed_v nor_o prevent_v from_o or_o by_o any_o humane_a instruction_n but_o proceed_v immediate_o from_o the_o pure_a revelation_n of_o god_n the_o other_o apostle_n be_v silent_a &_o not_o know_v what_o to_o answer_v be_v the_o cause_n in_o favour_n whereof_o christ_n choose_v prefer_v he_o before_o all_o other_o saint_n peter_n to_o constitute_v he_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o upon_o who_o ministry_n by_o prefer_v he_o before_o all_o other_o christ_n have_v build_v and_o edify_v his_o church_n but_o the_o differenc_n of_o these_o two_o exposition_n be_v that_o the_o one_o be_v immediate_a and_o the_o other_o mediate_v the_o one_o direct_a and_o the_o other_o collateral_a the_o one_o literal_a and_o the_o other_o moral_a the_o one_o original_a and_o perpetual_a and_o the_o other_o accessory_a and_o temporal_a the_o one_o consign_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o other_o introduce_v by_o occasion_n for_o before_o the_o arrian_n be_v rise_v up_o that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o the_o age_n of_o constantine_n and_o of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o interpretation_n that_o be_v current_n in_o the_o church_n be_v that_o not_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n but_o of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n as_o when_o 〈◊〉_d say_v in_o his_o book_n of_o prescription_n against_o heretic_n be_v there_o 32._o any_o thing_n conceal_v from_o peter_n who_o be_v call_v the_o stone_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n and_o origen_n see_v what_o be_v say_v to_o the_o great_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o solid_a stone_n upon_o which_o christ_n have_v build_v his_o church_n and_o elsewhere_o peter_n upon_o who_o the_o 5._o church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v build_v against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v and_o in_o the_o comentarie_a upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n translate_v by_o saint_n 15._o hierome_n when_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o feed_v the_o sheep_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n and_o that_o upon_o he_o as_o upon_o a_o stone_n the_o church_n be_v build_v the_o confession_n of_o any_o other_o virtue_n be_v not_o exact_v of_o he_o but_o only_o that_o of_o charity_n and_o s._n cyprian_n 5._o peter_n who_o the_o lord_n choose_v first_o and_o upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o church_n and_o again_o god_n be_v one_o and_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o chair_n be_v one_o build_v by_o 71._o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o peter_n but_o after_o the_o come_n of_o constantine_n when_o 4._o the_o arrian_n have_v lift_v themselves_o up_o against_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n the_o father_n find_v no_o passage_n in_o the_o scripture_n more_o express_a to_o prove_v unto_o they_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n not_o by_o adoption_n but_o 16._o by_o nature_n than_o this_o confession_n of_o saint_n peter_n thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n in_o which_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o word_n live_v have_v be_v express_o insert_v to_o show_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n by_o generation_n for_o as_o much_o as_o to_o engender_v as_o say_v the_o philosopher_n be_v proper_a to_o live_a thing_n they_o take_v care_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o dignity_n of_o this_o confession_n and_o because_o that_o in_o favour_n thereof_o and_o for_o it_o s._n peter_n have_v be_v constitute_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n they_o license_v themselves_o to_o call_v it_o by_o metonimy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o translation_n of_o the_o name_n from_o the_o effect_n to_o the_o cause_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o more_o occasion_n to_o declaim_v against_o those_o that_o destroy_v it_o in_o reproach_v they_o that_o they_o ruin_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o confession_n in_o favour_n whereof_o and_o for_o who_o cause_n he_o that_o have_v make_v it_o have_v be_v constitute_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o nevertheless_o to_o show_v that_o they_o intend_v not_o in_o do_v this_o to_o exclude_v the_o person_n of_o peter_n from_o be_v the_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o the_o same_o father_n have_v say_v in_o one_o place_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n as_o causal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n they_o say_v it_o in_o a_o other_o yea_o often_o time_n in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n as_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o appear_v by_o saint_n hilary_n who_o 6_o dispute_v in_o his_o work_n of_o the_o trinity_n against_o the_o arrian_n after_o he_o have_v say_v this_o faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o this_o faith_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n be_v disable_v against_o she_o this_o faith_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n add_v immediate_o after_o to_o declare_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v intend_v of_o the_o say_v of_o saint_n peter_n causallie_o and_o meritoriouslie_o but_o of_o his_o person_n formal_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o confession_n have_v only_o be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n for_o which_o saint_n peter_n have_v receive_v these_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o person_n of_o peter_n that_o have_v proper_o and_o formal_o receive_v ibidem_fw-la they_o this_o be_v he_o that_o in_o the_o silence_n of_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n acknowledge_v beyond_o the_o capacity_n of_o human_a infirmity_n the_o sonn_n of_o god_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o bless_a faith_n a_o supereminent_a place_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o have_v confess_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n and_o for_o that_o he_o be_v call_v bless_a this_o be_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o assurauce_n of_o eternity_n from_o hence_o he_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o 〈◊〉_d from_o hence_o his_o earthly_a judgment_n become_v heavenly_a and_o a_o little_a before_o after_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o bless_a simon_n be_v submit_v 10_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o very_a place_n of_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n 16._o christ_n the_o confession_n of_o peter_n have_v receive_v a_o true_o worthiereward_n ibidem_fw-la and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o title_n of_o a_o new_a name_n bless_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o worthy_a stone_n of_o her_o edification_n that_o destroy_v the_o law_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o deep_n and_o all_o the_o prison_n of_o death_n o_o bless_a porter_n of_o heaven_n to_o who_o arbitrement_n the_o key_n of_o the_o eternal_a entry_n be_v deliver_v who_o judgment_n on_o earth_n have_v authority_n to_o prejudge_v in_o heaven_n and_o elsewhere_o christ_n have_v so_o great_a a_o zeal_n to_o suffer_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o human_a kind_n as_o peter_n the_o first_o confessor_n of_o the_o sonn_n of_o god_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o porter_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n the_o judge_n of_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n dissuade_v he_o he_o call_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o satan_n and_o so_o saint_v chrysostome_n 13._o interpret_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v sometime_o of_o his_o faith_n upon_o this_o stone_n say_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o faith_n of_o this_o confession_n and_o sometime_o 6._o of_o his_o person_n he_o promise_v say_v he_o to_o make_v a_o fisherman_n more_o solid_a than_o any_o kind_n of_o stone_n and_o upon_o the_o fiftith_n psalm_n hear_v what_o he_o say_v to_o peter_n that_o pillar_n that_o foundation_n and_o therefore_o call_v peter_n as_o make_v a_o rock_n by_o faith_n and_o again_o that_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n that_o basis_n of_o 4_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v add_v of_o the_o apostolic_a flock_n and_o saint_n cyrill_n do_v even_o the_o same_o sometime_o of_o his_o faith_n he_o have_v say_v he_o call_v the_o immutable_a faith_n of_o peter_n his_o disciple_n a_o rock_n and_o sometime_o of_o his_o
person_n he_o foretell_v he_o he_o shall_v no_o more_o 〈◊〉_d call_v simon_n but_o 〈◊〉_d signifi_n most_o apt_o by_o that_o word_n that_o upon_o he_o as_o upon_o a_o 〈◊〉_d and_o a_o steadfast_a stone_n he_o shall_v build_v his_o church_n and_o this_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o first_o point_n of_o this_o article_n which_o be_v of_o build_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o faith_n or_o upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n let_v we_o pass_v forward_o to_o the_o second_o which_o be_v of_o that_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n the_o church_n say_v his_o majesty_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n &_o the_o other_o apostle_n here_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o distinguish_v the_o diverse_a use_n that_o this_o word_n foundation_n of_o the_o church_n receave_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o other_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n for_o there_o be_v a_o obiective_n foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o suggestive_a foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n i_o call_v that_o a_o obiective_n foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o first_o object_n that_o the_o church_n be_v oblige_v to_o know_v and_o embrace_v for_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o be_v christ_n of_o who_o s._n paul_n say_v none_o can_v 〈◊〉_d any_o other_o foundation_n beside_o that_o which_o 11_o be_v already_o lay_v that_o be_v chrict_a for_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o enter_v into_o the_o object_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o it_o be_v christian_a be_v christ_n god_n and_o man_n crucify_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o all_o the_o other_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n have_v no_o other_o place_n then_o as_o superedification_n and_o accessory_n to_o that_o i_o call_v that_o a_o suggestive_a foundation_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n ground_n and_o assure_v the_o belief_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o she_o hold_v for_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o this_o again_o be_v double_a the_o one_o principal_a and_o original_n to_o wit_n the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o who_o our_o lord_n say_v he_o shall_v suggest_v to_o you_o all_o thing_n that_o i_o 26._o have_v tell_v you_o and_o the_o other_o instrumental_a and_o organical_a to_o wit_n the_o voice_n and_o pen_n of_o those_o that_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o declare_v unto_o we_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n with_o certain_a and_o infallible_a authority_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n not_o only_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n but_o also_o all_o the_o prophet_n be_v foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o this_o apostolical_a sentence_n we_o be_v edify_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o 20._o in_o this_o same_o sense_n saint_n paul_n say_v in_o the_o second_o to_o the_o corinthian_n c._n that_o he_o have_v be_v nothing_o inferior_a to_o the_o most_o excellent_o great_a of_o the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n that_o he_o have_v not_o receive_v his_o gospel_n from_o man_n but_o from_o god_n and_o that_o those_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v something_o that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o that_o for_o the_o more_o particular_a familiarity_n that_o they_o have_v with_o our_o lord_n it_o seem_v they_o shall_v be_v more_o eminent_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o shall_v be_v the_o pillar_n of_o faith_n have_v teach_v he_o nothing_o for_o to_o be_v something_o according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o those_o 〈◊〉_d the_o east_n be_v a_o word_n not_o of_o contempt_n but_o of_o great_a and_o extraordinary_a estimation_n i_o call_v he_o foundation_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n that_o have_v the_o supereminence_n and_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o government_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o have_v distinguish_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n not_o but_o that_o the_o primitive_a and_o original_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o office_n of_o reveal_v the_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o perpetual_a and_o ordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o office_n of_o preseruiug_n and_o propagate_a the_o faith_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n paul_n call_v the_o 15_o church_n the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o ministry_n extend_v further_a and_o many_o as_o saint_n luke_n among_o other_o have_v be_v foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n who_o nevertheless_o have_v not_o be_v foundation_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n now_o it_o be_v of_o this_o kind_n of_o foundation_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v treat_v off_o in_o these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o what_o follow_v of_o the_o key_n and_o of_o the_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v this_o quality_n then_o of_o foundation_n of_o the_o government_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n to_o dispute_v whether_o since_o it_o have_v be_v extend_v and_o communicate_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v a_o other_o point_n for_o what_o s._n paul_n say_v if_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o christ_n i_o be_o so_o more_o than_o they_o be_v to_o be_v 23._o understand_v of_o the_o excess_n in_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o not_o in_o the_o authority_n but_o at_o the_o least_o when_o our_o lord_n pronounce_v these_o word_n 18._o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o that_o instant_n and_o in_o those_o word_n it_o be_v confer_v to_o none_o but_o to_o saint_v peter_z for_o the_o word_n be_v all_o pronounce_v in_o singular_a term_n 19_o and_o exclude_v plurality_n bless_v be_v thou_o simon_n sonn_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o that_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o saint_n ambrose_n declare_v who_o after_o he_o have_v say_v this_o man_n to_o wit_n peter_z when_o he_o have_v hear_v but_o 4_o 〈◊〉_d what_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o present_o not_o forgetful_a of_o his_o place_n he_o make_v the_o primacy_n add_v to_o it_o it_o be_v then_o this_o peter_n that_o answer_v before_o the_o rest_n but_o for_o the_o rest_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v foundation_n which_o saint_n cyprian_a likewise_o acknowledge_v eccl_n in_o these_o word_n upon_o he_o be_v one_o he_o build_v the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v give_v to_o saint_n peter_n in_o favour_n and_o for_o recompense_v of_o his_o coafession_n all_o the_o other_o apostle_n that_o have_v part_n in_o his_o confession_n ought_v also_o to_o have_v their_o part_n therein_o for_o the_o quality_n of_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o give_v to_o saint_v peter_z in_o favour_n of_o his_o confession_n simple_o for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o faithful_a but_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o confession_n wherein_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v no_o actual_a part_n but_o only_o by_o consent_n and_o non_fw-la repugnancy_n for_o as_o much_o as_o saint_v peter_z only_o answer_v as_o illuminate_v immediate_o from_o god_n the_o other_o be_v silent_a and_o not_o know_v what_o to_o say_v and_o learning_n it_o but_o my_o the_o mean_n of_o saint_n peter_n answer_n he_o be_v say_v saint_n 11._o 〈◊〉_d make_v worthy_a of_o first_o know_v what_o there_o be_v of_o god_n in_o christ._n and_o 〈◊〉_d cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n all_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v silent_a for_o this_o doctrine_n be_v above_o their_o reach_n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n not_o of_o his_o own_o invention_n neither_o persuade_v by_o human_a reason_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o soul_n by_o god_n the_o father_n say_v to_o he_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o sonn_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o saint_n athanasius_n many_o year_n before_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d father_n reveal_v to_o peter_n those_o thing_n whereof_o our_o lord_n demand_v he_o 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o doubt_v but_o the_o same_o lord_n who_o inquire_v as_o if_o he_o have_v first_o reveal_v to_o 〈◊〉_d those_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v know_v from_o the_o father_n he_o ask_v he_o human_o to_o 〈◊〉_d in_o inquire_v
disciple_n and_o optatus_n milevit_fw-la in_o the_o roman_a chair_n there_o be_v set_v peter_n the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o again_o against_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n we_o read_v that_o peter_n 64._o our_o prince_n have_v receive_v the_o wholesome_a key_n and_o s._n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n peter_n as_o the_o prince_n and_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n first_o cry_v out_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n even_o until_o then_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o well_o know_v unto_o antiquity_n that_o saint_n peter_n be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christian_a religion_n as_o the_o very_a pagan_n and_o porphirius_fw-la among_o the_o rest_n as_o saint_n hierome_n report_v it_o reproach_v it_o to_o christian_n that_o s._n paul_n have_v 〈◊〉_d be_v so_o rash_a as_o to_o reprove_v peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o his_o master_n and_o they_o feign_v as_o say_v saint_n augustine_n that_o the_o oracle_n of_o their_o false_a god_n have_v be_v inquire_v of_o concern_v christian_n religion_n answer_v 53._o this_o blasphemy_n that_o chrict_a be_v innocent_a of_o the_o imposture_n of_o the_o christian_n but_o that_o peter_n who_o be_v a_o magician_n for_o the_o love_n he_o bear_v to_o his_o master_n have_v invent_v christian_a religion_n and_o this_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o comparison_n between_o peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n for_o i_o will_v not_o now_o treat_v of_o the_o other_o frequent_a mark_n of_o the_o pre-eminence_n and_o authority_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v in_o the_o evangelicall_a and_o apostolic_a history_n as_o that_o our_o lord_n command_v he_o to_o pay_v the_o tribute_n for_o himself_o and_o for_o he_o that_o he_o undertake_v 17._o 〈◊〉_d the_o care_n of_o the_o replace_n of_o a_o other_o apostle_n in_o judas_n his_o 2._o steed_n all_o the_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o bend_v 5._o and_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o his_o word_n that_o he_o be_v nominate_v as_o for_o pre-eminence_n and_o rank_v a_o part_n peter_z and_o the_o eleven_o that_o they_o bear_v the_o sick_a into_o the_o apostle_n way_n that_o peter_n shadow_n may_v pass_v over_o they_o that_o 10_o that_o he_o alone_o judge_v ananias_n and_o saphira_n to_o death_n that_o to_o he_o alone_o be_v reveal_v the_o introduction_n of_o the_o nation_n into_o the_o church_n and_o other_o the_o like_a for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o my_o purpose_n to_o examine_v the_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n but_o only_o those_o that_o his_o majesty_n have_v allege_v and_o to_o examine_v those_o not_o by_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o father_n who_o objection_n i_o think_v i_o have_v sufficient_o satisfy_v and_o as_o for_o origens_n interpretation_n which_o 1._o extend_v this_o text_n to_o all_o christian_n in_o general_a and_o say_v that_o whosoever_o confess_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n be_v make_v a_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o interpretation_n morallize_v from_o this_o passage_n to_o bring_v it_o into_o sense_n although_o strain_v and_o wrest_v who_o fruit_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o all_o the_o hearer_n and_o not_o a_o serious_a and_o literal_a interpretation_n as_o the_o same_o origen_n that_o make_v use_v of_o it_o testify_v when_o he_o expound_v it_o express_o and_o literal_o of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n there_o remain_v the_o three_o point_n which_o be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o christ_n now_o in_o this_o point_n we_o be_v all_o of_o accord_n with_o his_o majesty_n but_o yet_o we_o grant_v not_o that_o s._n peter_n leave_v to_o be_v the_o visible_a and_o ministerial_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o philosopher_n teach_v we_o that_o thing_n subordinate_a combat_n not_o one_o a_o other_o but_o embrace_v &_o presuppose_v one_o &_o other_o &_o therefore_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o say_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o repugnant_a proposition_n but_o unanimous_a and_o compatible_a for_o we_o do_v not_o pretend_v that_o they_o be_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n after_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sort_n but_o we_o hold_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o himself_o and_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o s._n peter_n only_o by_o commission_n no_o more_o then_o to_o say_v with_o moses_n that_o god_n only_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n in_o their_o passage_n from_o egypt_n to_o the_o land_n of_o chanaan_n and_o to_o say_v with_o s._n steven_n that_o moses_n guide_v the_o people_n in_o 〈◊〉_d the_o wilderness_n this_o be_v he_o say_v he_o that_o be_v with_o the_o church_n in_o the_o desert_n 17._o be_v not_o thing_n incompatible_a for_o god_n be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n by_o his_o proper_a virtue_n and_o moses_n by_o commission_n and_o lievetenancie_n from_o god_n likewise_o to_o say_v that_o the_o viceroy_n of_o ireland_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o government_n and_o policy_n of_o ireland_n and_o to_o say_v that_o the_o excellent_a king_n of_o great_a britain_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o state_n and_o policy_n of_o the_o same_o ireland_n be_v not_o thing_n incompatible_a for_o the_o excellent_a king_n of_o great_a britain_n be_v so_o by_o his_o proper_a authority_n and_o the_o viceroy_n be_v so_o by_o commission_n lievetenancie_n and_o representation_n although_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o literal_a intention_n of_o this_o passage_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o 16._o will_v build_v my_o church_n be_v no_o way_n to_o design_n by_o the_o word_n rock_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o only_a of_o peter_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o six_o evident_a reason_n the_o first_o that_o our_o lord_n have_v foretell_v to_o s._n peter_n that_o he_o will_v change_v his_o name_n not_o by_o the_o attribution_n of_o a_o simple_a epithet_n as_o he_o do_v to_o 3._o the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n who_o he_o call_v the_o son_n of_o thunder_n but_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o a_o name_n ordinary_a and_o permanent_a in_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d put_v he_o no_o where_o in_o possession_n of_o this_o promise_n nor_o explain_v to_o he_o no_o where_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o imposition_n of_o this_o name_n 1._o but_o in_o this_o passage_n thou_o be_v peter_n &_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n now_o this_o passage_n can_v explain_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n peter_n if_o in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o passage_n the_o word_n rock_n be_v not_o take_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o for_o the_o same_o subject_n for_o which_o it_o be_v take_v in_o the_o first_o and_o by_o consequence_n this_o clause_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n can_v there_o be_v interpret_v of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n but_o on_o the_o only_a person_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o second_o that_o our_o lord_n mean_v in_o this_o place_n to_o render_v a_o exchange_n for_o the_o word_n that_o s._n peter_n speak_v of_o he_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o this_o preface_n and_o i_o tell_v thou_o which_o for_o this_o cause_n beza_n have_v translate_v into_o these_o word_n and_o i_o tell_v thou_o reciprocallie_o now_o s._n peter_n in_o his_o proposition_n have_v do_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o to_o declare_v the_o appellative_a name_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v christ_n &_o the_o other_o to_o explain_v the_o sense_n and_o energy_n of_o the_o same_o name_n of_o christ_n in_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o therefore_o the_o law_n of_o the_o antithesis_fw-la &_o correspondency_n will_n that_o not_o only_o our_o lord_n shall_v declare_v the_o name_n that_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o give_v he_o in_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o be_v peter_n but_o also_o shall_v explain_v the_o sense_n &_o energy_n of_o this_o name_n in_o say_v to_o he_o and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n which_o can_v not_o be_v unless_o by_o the_o word_n rock_n in_o this_o second_o clause_n there_o be_v literal_o understand_v the_o person_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o not_o that_o of_o christ_n the_o three_o that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o thing_n extreme_o from_o the_o purpose_n to_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n for_o the_o language_n that_o our_o lord_n mean_v to_o speak_v to_o s._n peter_n if_o by_o this_o clause_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n he_o have_v not_o intend_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n for_o the_o word_n rock_n have_v no_o metaphorical_a relation_n to_o the_o key_n but_o to_o the_o build_n the_o four_o that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o inconstant_a grammatical_a consequence_n and_o evil_a knit_v to_o say_v and_o i_o
acknowledge_v that_o our_o lord_n in_o calling_n peter_n cephas_n do_v intend_v to_o call_v he_o rock_n and_o to_o constitute_v he_o for_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o rabbi_n helias_n in_o his_o tisbi_n upon_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o word_n cephas_n jesus_n the_o nazarean_a say_v he_o call_v simon_n sonn_v of_o bariona_fw-la cephas_n which_o signify_v fortitude_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n sela_fw-mi be_v cepha_n which_o signify_v in_o many_o place_n fortitude_n mean_v that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o fortitude_n of_o his_o religion_n and_o therefore_o he_o call_v he_o cephas_n and_o to_o this_o there_o do_v agree_v all_o the_o famous_a edition_n of_o scripture_n in_o what_o tongue_n soever_o as_o well_o print_v as_o manuscript_n for_o not_o only_o the_o hebrew_n edition_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n matthew_n publish_v by_o munster_n say_v thou_o be_v cepha_n and_o upon_o this_o cepha_n thou_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n and_o the_o syriack_n publish_v by_o moses_n of_o merdin_n in_o mesopotamia_n and_o republisht_v by_o tremellius_n thou_o be_v kipho_n and_o upon_o this_o kipho_n thou_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n but_o also_o the_o arabic_a have_v it_o thou_o be_v ascara_n and_o upon_o this_o ascara_n thou_o be_v the_o stone_n and_o upon_o this_o stone_n and_o the_o persian_a thou_o be_v zeng_n and_o upon_o this_o zeng_n thou_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n and_o the_o armenian_a thou_o be_v vimi_fw-la and_o upon_o this_o vimi_fw-la thou_o be_v the_o stone_n and_o upon_o this_o stone_n and_o the_o ruthenian_a egyptian_a and_o ethiopian_a even_o the_o same_o nevertheless_o though_o the_o want_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o syriack_n tongue_n suffer_v saint_n augustine_a to_o fall_v into_o this_o mistake_n to_o think_v that_o the_o primitive_a word_n rock_n be_v not_o there_o attribute_v to_o saint_n peter_n but_o only_o the_o derivative_n and_o that_o petrus_n signify_v not_o rock_n but_o rockey_n or_o stonie_n he_o have_v always_o acknowledge_v be_v it_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v it_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o thing_n that_o we_o conclude_v out_o of_o this_o passage_n to_o wit_n the_o primacy_n of_o saint_n peter_n for_o interpretate_v a_o while_n after_o these_o word_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n of_o the_o donation_n of_o the_o key_n make_v to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n he_o say_v the_o church_n do_v then_o receive_v in_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n the_o key_n because_o peter_n figure_v the_o church_n and_o yield_v elsewhere_o a_o reason_n why_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n figure_v the_o church_n he_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v because_o of_o his_o primacy_n he_o bear_v say_v he_o by_o a_o figur_n ative_a generality_n the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n because_o of_o the_o primacy_n he_o have_v among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n by_o which_o word_n primacy_n he_o intend_v according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o superintendencie_n and_o principality_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o wisdom_n i_o have_v have_v primacy_n 2._o in_o all_o nation_n and_o by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n augustine_n peter_n denominate_v from_o the_o rock_n happy_a bear_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n hold_v the_o principallitie_n of_o the_o apostleshipp_n and_o again_o who_o know_v not_o that_o this_o principallitie_n epist-162_a of_o the_o apostleship_n aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o whatsoever_o other_o bishopric_n and_o elsewhere_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o the_o indivisibility_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n iu._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n but_o it_o have_v begin_v to_o diminish_v in_o lustre_n as_o be_v divide_v into_o many_o part_n as_o for_o external_a communion_n whole_o separate_v one_o from_o a_o other_o the_o reply_n two_o opuntine_n brother_n divide_v the_o inheritance_n of_o their_o father_n with_o such_o rigour_n as_o they_o divide_v even_o to_o a_o cup_n and_o to_o a_o coat_n it_o be_v in_o a_o sort_n thus_o with_o the_o heretic_n they_o do_v indeed_o divide_v the_o chalice_n that_o our_o father_n have_v leave_v we_o by_o testament_n and_o where_o of_o david_n sing_v the_o lord_n be_v the_o portion_n of_o my_o inheritance_n and_o of_o my_o chalice_n 15_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o do_v indeed_o divide_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o coat_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o church_n they_o can_v divide_v for_o it_o be_v alone_o and_o indivisible_a when_o the_o reign_n of_o israel_n say_v s._n cyprian_n shall_v eccl._n be_v divide_v the_o prophet_n achias_n divide_v his_o raiment_n but_o because_o the_o poeple_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v divide_v his_o coat_n weave_v of_o a_o piece_n and_o keep_v itself_o whole_a be_v not_o divide_v by_o those_o that_o possess_v it_o the_o coat_n of_o christ_n indivisible_o unite_v preserve_v itself_o whole_a show_v the_o indissoluble_a concord_n of_o our_o poeple_n of_o we_o who_o have_v put_v on_o christ._n by_o the_o sacrament_n &_o sign_n of_o his_o coat_n he_o have_v declare_v the_o unity_n if_o his_o church_n who_o then_o be_v he_o so_o impious_a so_o faithless_a and_o so_o disturb_v with_o the_o fury_n of_o discord_n that_o believe_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o god_n the_o coat_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v divide_v or_o dare_v to_o divide_v it_o not_o but_o that_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o person_n whereof_o the_o church_n be_v compound_v and_o which_o analogicallie_o be_v in_o steed_n of_o matter_n to_o it_o may_v be_v divide_v but_o this_o division_n be_v but_o a_o material_a division_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o a_o formal_a division_n no_o more_o than_o the_o division_n that_o the_o false_a mother_n will_v have_v make_v of_o the_o child_n have_v be_v a_o formal_a division_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o be_v and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o whole_a have_v not_o remain_v in_o either_o of_o the_o part_n but_o a_o material_a division_n for_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o natural_a organical_a body_n may_v be_v materiallie_o divide_v but_o formal_o it_o can_v be_v divide_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o member_n and_o part_n may_v indeed_o be_v separate_v from_o their_o whole_a but_o after_o the_o separation_n they_o be_v no_o more_o member_n and_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o 〈◊〉_d and_o by_o abuse_n of_o language_n even_o as_o the_o member_n and_o part_n of_o a_o body_n endue_v with_o a_o life_n animal_n and_o sensitive_a when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v separate_v from_o their_o whole_a be_v no_o more_o member_n and_o part_n but_o equivocal_o forth_o as_o much_o as_o they_o participate_v no_o more_o of_o the_o form_n of_o the_o body_n which_o can_v be_v possess_v but_o in_o unity_n nor_o reside_v but_o in_o one_o only_a mass_n unite_v and_o continue_v by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o church_n after_o the_o division_n of_o the_o external_a communion_n reside_v only_o in_o one_o of_o the_o part_n to_o wit_n in_o that_o from_o which_o the_o other_o have_v divide_v themselves_o and_o not_o in_o the_o other_o for_o the_o church_n be_v either_o one_o or_o none_o my_o dove_n 6._o say_v the_o spouse_n be_v a_o only_a one_o and_o david_n jerusalem_n that_o be_v build_v as_o 〈◊〉_d a_o city_n who_o participation_n be_v in_o unity_n and_o saint_n paul_n one_o body_n and_o one_o 4._o spirit_n as_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o hope_n of_o your_o vocation_n &_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v one_o church_n which_o can_v not_o be_v at_o once_o among_o you_o and_o among_o us._n it_o rest_v then_o that_o it_o be_v in_o one_o place_n and_o saint_n chrisostome_n the_o 2._o name_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o a_o name_n of_o division_n but_o a_o name_n of_o union_n and_o agreement_n 1._o and_o saint_n augustine_n he_o be_v one_o the_o church_n be_v unity_n nothing_o answer_v to_o one_o but_o unity_n and_o elsewhere_o let_v every_o other_o inheritance_n be_v deunide_v among_o 101._o coheire_n the_o inheritance_n of_o peace_n can_v be_v divide_v and_o therefore_o when_o the_o idem_fw-la father_n say_v that_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n divide_v the_o church_n they_o intend_v either_o that_o they_o divide_v it_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o indevor_n to_o divide_v it_o or_o that_o they_o divide_v it_o materiallie_o and_o not_o formal_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o make_v thereof_o many_o society_n but_o not_o many_o church_n of_o the_o effect_n that_o division_n bring_v
that_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v but_o one_o nature_n that_o be_v to_o say_v confound_v and_o steep_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o humanity_n in_o that_o of_o the_o divinity_n do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n cry_v out_o those_o that_o believe_v 4._o not_o that_o christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o same_o body_n wherein_o he_o have_v be_v crucify_v and_o bury_v although_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o the_o country_n over_o the_o which_o the_o church_n be_v spread_v be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n how_o can_v then_o the_o true_a church_n have_v communion_n with_o this_o sect_n and_o how_o can_v this_o sect_n be_v a_o member_n and_o a_o true_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o hold_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n and_o of_o this_o sect_n there_o shall_v be_v frame_v one_o common_a body_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n and_o to_o go_v about_o to_o join_v they_o together_o in_o one_o selfe-same_a society_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n and_o more_o to_o add_v unto_o they_o all_o other_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n how_o be_v it_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o go_v about_o to_o join_v like_o mezentius_n dead_a body_n with_o live_a body_n and_o to_o make_v of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n &_o of_o the_o dove_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o only_a catholic_a church_n a_o monster_n and_o a_o prodigy_n compound_v of_o all_o the_o impious_a horrible_a and_o contradictory_n heresy_n that_o have_v rend_v the_o coat_n and_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o put_v communion_n between_o christ_n and_o beliall_a and_o between_o light_n and_o darkness_n the_o catholic_a church_n then_o be_v not_o a_o mass_n and_o common_a society_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o confusion_n of_o all_o sect_n and_o of_o all_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v christian_n but_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a society_n among_o all_o those_o society_n which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a or_o total_a church_n not_o because_o it_o contain_v in_o deed_n all_o the_o rest_n you_o will_v say_v optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la to_o the_o donatist_n be_v alone_o all_o the_o whole_a 〈◊〉_d 2._o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o whole_a and_o saint_n augustine_n whosoever_o defend_v a_o part_n separate_v from_o the_o whole_a can_v usurp_v the_o title_n of_o a_o catholic_n but_o because_o she_o contain_v they_o in_o right_a and_o hold_v habituallie_o the_o place_n 7._o of_o the_o whole_a in_o regard_n of_o they_o for_o the_o church_n hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o whole_a habituallie_o in_o regard_n of_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n and_o by_o her_o eminency_n for_o as_o much_o as_o none_o of_o the_o other_o consider_v every_o one_o a_o part_n equal_n her_o in_a number_n and_o in_o multitude_n howbeit_o say_v saint_n augustine_n that_o there_o be_v many_o heresy_n of_o christian_n which_o will_v be_v all_o call_v catholic_n there_o be_v nevertheless_o one_o church_n if_o you_o cast_v your_o eye_n upon_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n more_o abundant_a in_o multitude_n and_o because_o unto_o she_o alone_o belong_v the_o prerogative_n of_o be_v successive_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n in_o beginning_n from_o jerusalem_n whereas_o none_o of_o the_o other_o have_v the_o privilege_n but_o that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o like_o that_o kind_n of_o ape_n which_o the_o greek_n call_v callithrix_fw-la can_v live_v but_o in_o that_o climate_n and_o under_o the_o same_o influence_n wherein_o they_o be_v breed_v and_o beyond_o this_o because_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v go_v forth_o from_o she_o and_o she_o have_v as_o saint_n augustine_n say_v still_o remain_v in_o her_o stock_n and_o root_n hold_v the_o place_n and_o right_a of_o the_o whole_a in_o regard_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n no_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o that_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n in_o which_o the_o life_n stand_v and_o root_n rest_v hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o whole_a habituallie_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v separate_v from_o contr_n 2._o it_o they_o under_o sy_n and_o not_o say_v he_o that_o among_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o christian_n there_o be_v one_o true_a and_o wholesome_a and_o in_o sort_n germinall_a and_o radical_a christian_a society_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o and_o final_o because_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v oblige_v if_o they_o will_v obtain_v salvation_n to_o reinsert_v and_o reincorporate_v themselves_o into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n hold_v most_o steadfast_o say_v fulgentius_n that_o no_o heretic_n or_o schismatik_a if_o he_o be_v 39_o not_o reconcile_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n before_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n can_v be_v save_v otherwise_o if_o all_o the_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a society_n which_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n may_v justly_o enjoy_v the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v actuallie_o part_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o have_v the_o father_n employ_v these_o sentence_n against_o heretic_n and_o schismatics_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 1._o of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n that_o out_o of_o the_o church_n there_o may_v be_v have_v the_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o salvation_n except_v that_o emerit_fw-la who_o have_v not_o the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o he_o that_o communicate_v with_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_a and_o eccles._n he_o that_o communicate_v not_o therewith_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n and_o how_o can_v the_o excellent_a king_n himself_o have_v protest_v that_o he_o believe_v without_o colour_n or_o fraud_n that_o the_o be_v one_o only_a church_n in_o deed_n and_o in_o name_n catholic_a and_o universal_a spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n out_o of_o which_o there_o can_v be_v 〈◊〉_d salvation_n hope_v for_o and_o condemn_v and_o detest_v those_o that_o heretofore_o or_o since_o have_v separate_v themselves_o either_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o be_v become_v heretic_n as_o the_o manichee_n or_o from_o her_o communion_n and_o be_v become_v schismatickes_n as_o the_o donatist_n if_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v comprehend_v all_o the_o heretic_n and_o all_o schismatic_n among_o which_o there_o be_v never_o any_o more_o pernicious_a than_o those_o that_o destroy_v the_o human_a nature_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a organ_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n do_v for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n avow_v that_o the_o frame_n &_o contexture_n of_o the_o church_n be_v already_o long_o ago_o dissolve_v &_o dissassemble_v between_o they_o &_o we_o but_o add_v in_o regard_n of_o external_a form_n s._n john_n 〈◊〉_d in_o say_v to_o we_o if_o any_o one_o bring_v thou_o not_o this_o doctrine_n say_v not_o so_o much_o to_o he_o as_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o for_o whosoever_o shall_v say_v to_o he_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o shall_v communicate_v in_o his_o wiched_a work_n forbid_v we_o all_o communion_n as_o well_o internal_a as_o external_a with_o they_o and_o elsewhere_o we_o have_v already_o show_v that_o when_o external_a and_o sacramental_a communion_n be_v interdict_v on_o both_o side_n that_o be_v to_o say_v where_o there_o be_v a_o reciprocal_a excommunication_n and_o a_o erection_n of_o altar_n against_o altar_n there_o can_v be_v unity_n either_o internal_a or_o external_a if_o we_o be_v in_o unity_n say_v s._n augustine_n what_o make_v two_o pupp_n altar_n in_o the_o city_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n the_o church_n which_o be_v catholic_n 2._o be_v one_o maintain_v herself_o whole_a and_o be_v join_v together_o with_o the_o cement_n of_o prelate_n adhere_v to_o one_o another_o but_o against_o these_o decision_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n there_o do_v arise_v four_o objection_n the_o first_o that_o the_o word_n church_n do_v grammaticallie_o signify_v assembly_n and_o consequent_o that_o all_o assembly_n be_v church_n and_o so_o all_o christian_a assembly_n be_v christian_a church_n now_o this_o objection_n be_v good_a in_o gramar_n and_o to_o interpret_v profane_a author_n but_o not_o in_o divinity_n nor_o to_o interpret_v christian_n author_n among_o who_o the_o word_n church_n have_v no_o more_o this_o vast_a and_o large_a grammatical_a signification_n as_o it_o have_v before_o for_o as_o when_o hormodius_fw-la and_o aristogiton_n have_v free_v the_o common_a wealth_n of_o athens_n from_o the_o slavery_n of_o the_o thirty_o tyrant_n the_o athenian_a senate_n to_o consecrate_v their_o name_n and_o to_o make_v they_o reverence_v to_o posterity_n ordain_v that_o from_o thence_o forward_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v impose_v upon_o or_o communicate_v to_o any_o other_o so_o after_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v to_o his_o
church_n the_o privilege_n to_o conquer_v hell_n and_o to_o deliver_v mankind_n from_o the_o tyranny_n and_o oppression_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o name_n be_v become_v consecrate_v and_o affect_v to_o she_o alone_o and_o it_o have_v be_v forbid_v to_o communicate_v it_o any_o more_o to_o any_o other_o society_n either_o paga_n heretical_a or_o schismatical_a let_v not_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n say_v the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n be_v call_v church_n but_o mock-councell_n and_o the_o very_a law_n of_o 71._o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o donation_n make_v to_o heretical_a conventicle_n which_o they_o presume_v rash_o to_o call_v church_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o reverend_a catholic_n church_n 5._o the_o second_o that_o s._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o galatian_n and_o to_o the_o corinthian_n call_v their_o society_n church_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o galatian_n err_v in_o faith_n embrace_v the_o circumcision_n with_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o corinthian_n in_o not_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n but_o the_o snare_n here_o be_v manifest_a for_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o particular_a person_n which_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o church_n the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o church_n be_v that_o which_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o body_n of_o that_o church_n &_o under_o the_o codition_n whereof_o either_o express_a or_o tacit_a she_o receive_v man_n into_o her_o comunion_n &_o not_o the_o doctrine_n which_o every_o particular_a man_n stray_v fro_o the_o commo_fw-la doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o church_n hold_v against_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o body_n now_o it_o can_v be_v find_v that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n do_v ever_o hold_v that_o the_o dead_a do_v not_o rise_v again_o nor_o that_o she_o have_v exact_v that_o belief_n from_o those_o that_o enter_v into_o her_o communion_n but_o only_o that_o among_o the_o corinthian_n there_o be_v some_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a if_o christ_n say_v s._n paul_n be_v preach_v to_o have_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a how_o be_v it_o that_o there_o be_v some_o among_o you_o that_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o s._n paul_n make_v his_o remonstrance_n in_o common_a it_o be_v to_o hinder_v they_o from_o be_v seduce_v by_o they_o which_o speak_v this_o language_n suffer_v not_o yourselves_o say_v he_o to_o be_v seduce_v evil_a word_n corrupt_v good_a manner_n but_o not_o that_o he_o suppose_v they_o believe_v it_o contrariwise_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o remain_v firm_a in_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v and_o therefore_o my_o brother_n say_v he_o be_v steadfast_a and_o unmoveable_a and_o for_o the_o galatian_n so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o that_o error_n which_o saint_n paul_n cry_v out_o against_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o galatian_n as_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o which_o rebel_v against_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o galatian_n which_o doctrine_n saint_n paul_n dispute_v as_o if_o all_o the_o galatian_n have_v embrace_v it_o not_o that_o they_o do_v do_v so_o but_o to_o hinder_v they_o from_o do_v so_o as_o he_o testify_v to_o they_o in_o these_o word_n i_o have_v this_o confidence_n of_o you_o in_o our_o lord_n that_o 6._o you_o will_v have_v no_o other_o belief_n but_o that_o he_o that_o trouble_v you_o shall_v bear_v his_o judgement_n whosoever_o he_o be_v and_o again_o if_o a_o man_n be_v find_v in_o any_o crime_n do_v you_o which_o be_v spiritual_a instruct_v he_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o mildness_n and_o that_o this_o be_v 48_o the_o true_a intent_n of_o saint_n paul_n saint_n augustine_n teach_v we_o when_o he_o write_v to_o vincentius_n rogatist_n thou_o may_v say_v even_o as_o well_o that_o many_o of_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n be_v not_o when_o the_o apostle_n cry_v out_o o_o foolish_a galatian_n who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o and_o a_o while_n after_o the_o canonical_a ibid._n scripture_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o make_v their_o reprehcnsion_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o may_v seem_v the_o word_n be_v address_v to_o all_o and_o nevertheless_o it_o concern_v but_o some_o few_o the_o three_o be_v that_o saint_n augustine_n dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n contr_n write_v that_o the_o church_n beget_v all_o christian_n by_o baptism_n from_o whence_o they_o will_v infer_v that_o all_o those_o then_o that_o be_v baptize_v as_o well_o catholik_o 14._o as_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o he_o bring_v with_o it_o express_o this_o distinction_n either_o in_o herself_o or_o without_o herself_o to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n beget_v none_o but_o catholic_n only_a in_o herself_o as_o sara_n beget_v but_o isaac_n only_o in_o herself_o and_o that_o the_o rest_n the_o church_n beget_v without_o herself_o for_o although_o ishmael_n be_v not_o beget_v in_o the_o body_n of_o sara_n but_o in_o the_o body_n of_o agar_n yet_o he_o be_v in_o a_o sort_n beget_v by_o sara_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v beget_v by_o she_o that_o belong_v to_o sara_n and_o be_v saras_n nuptial_a right_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n so_o than_o the_o heretic_n be_v beget_v by_o baptism_n out_o of_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v the_o church_n that_o beget_v they_o even_o out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o baptism_n whereby_o they_o be_v beget_v and_o which_o those_o that_o baptise_v they_o have_v carry_v out_o of_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n and_o be_v of_o the_o conjugal_a right_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o heresy_n by_o which_o mean_n when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v baptise_v supra_fw-la they_o again_o the_o church_n say_v he_o beget_v all_o christian_n by_o baptism_n be_v it_o in_o herself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o her_o bowel_n or_o without_o herself_o that_o be_v to_o be_v to_o say_v of_o her_o husband_n seed_n be_v it_o in_o herself_o or_o in_o the_o bond-woeman_n whereby_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o teach_v that_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o church_n as_o contrariwise_o he_o plain_o affirm_v hereby_o that_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o thing_n wherein_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n be_v at_o agreement_n be_v that_o heretic_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o thing_n where_o about_o they_o disagree_v be_v that_o the_o donatist_n hold_v that_o baptism_n can_v not_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o that_o heretic_n can_v not_o have_v it_o and_o catholic_v contrariwise_o maintain_v that_o baptism_n may_v to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o that_o heretic_n though_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n leave_v not_o to_o have_v it_o the_o church_n say_v saint_n augustine_n compare_v to_o paradise_n teach_v we_o that_o baptism_n 1._o may_v be_v have_v without_o she_o but_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o beatitude_n none_o can_v receive_v or_o have_v out_o of_o she_o for_o the_o flood_n of_o the_o fountain_n of_o paradise_n run_v abowdantlie_o forth_o of_o it_o and_o in_o the_o book_n follow_v what_o be_v say_v he_o this_o doctrine_n that_o a_o heretic_n be_v pretend_v to_o have_v no_o baptism_n because_o he_o have_v no_o church_n and_o again_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o there_o be_v some_o that_o say_v that_o baptism_n and_o the_o church_n can_v be_v separate_v and_o divide_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o elsewhere_o but_o of_o the_o church_n and_o against_o the_o church_n they_o have_v hold_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o in_o a_o civil_a war_n they_o have_v fight_v bear_v our_o own_o banner_n against_o us._n from_o whence_o we_o may_v discover_v the_o impertinency_n of_o those_o that_o conclude_v that_o because_o heretical_a sect_n have_v baptism_n therefore_o they_o be_v church_n the_o fowrth_a 〈◊〉_d be_v that_o saint_n hierome_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n say_v to_o hilary_n a_o luciferian_a deacon_n i_o be_o a_o harlott_n but_o yet_o i_o be_o thy_o mother_n i_o commit_v adultery_n with_o arius_n and_o i_o do_v so_o before_o with_o praxea_n 〈◊〉_d cerinthus_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o manifest_v that_o this_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a equivocation_n by_o which_o they_o attribute_v that_o to_o s._n hierome_n as_o speak_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n which_o he_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o adversary_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o heretic_n against_o who_o he_o dispute_v for_o to_o this_o that_o some_o add_v that_o a_o lie_a man_n leave_v to_o be_v true_o a_o man_n although_o he_o be_v not_o a_o true_a
intend_v in_o deed_n and_o not_o in_o right_n for_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o heretic_n belong_v by_o right_a to_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v to_o exercise_v her_o authority_n over_o they_o and_o to_o judge_v censure_n and_o excommunicate_v they_o but_o we_o say_v that_o they_o belong_v not_o in_o deed_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o actual_o comprehend_v and_o contain_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o be_v not_o member_n and_o part_n thereof_o and_o it_o be_v not_o we_o that_o say_v this_o but_o saint_n augustine_n who_o write_v it_o in_o these_o word_n and_o therefore_o neither_o the_o heretic_n belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o she_o love_v god_n nor_o the_o schismatic_a because_o she_o love_v her_o neighbour_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o other_o sect_n chap._n xii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o it_o be_v not_o you_o alone_o that_o attribute_n to_o yourselves_o this_o right_n other_o also_o do_v the_o same_o for_o at_o this_o day_n a_o word_n the_o king_n can_v speak_v without_o groan_v there_o be_v many_o particular_a church_n which_o believe_v themselves_o only_o to_o be_v the_o particular_a people_n that_o they_o call_v the_o church_n if_o you_o give_v they_o strength_n like_o the_o roman_n they_o will_v already_o have_v do_v as_o that_o have_v do_v and_o will_v judge_v the_o rest_n no_o less_o severelie_o the_o reply_n what_o those_o be_v we_o be_v not_o to_o answer_n let_v the_o dead_a bury_v their_o dead_a only_o we_o may_v say_v their_o conclusion_n will_v be_v good_a if_o their_o hypothesis_n be_v true_a for_o if_o they_o be_v true_a church_n every_o society_n which_o shall_v be_v exclude_v out_o of_o their_o communion_n shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n and_o from_o the_o right_n of_o be_v able_a to_o call_v themselves_o a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o church_n as_o have_v be_v above_o say_v be_v either_o one_o or_o none_o of_o the_o persuasion_n that_o the_o other_o sect_n pretend_v to_o have_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o church_n by_o scripture_n chap._n xiii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o that_o there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n many_o sect_n which_o be_v celebrate_v the_o sectary_n whereof_o be_v most_o steadfast_o persuade_v that_o they_o alone_o see_v some_o thing_n into_o holy_a write_v and_o as_o say_v the_o poet_n that_o they_o alone_o be_v understanding_n and_o that_o the_o rest_n hunt_v after_o a_o shadow_n the_o reply_n harpaste_n 〈◊〉_d domestical_a fool_n have_v lose_v her_o sight_n will_v not_o believe_v it_o be_v she_o that_o be_v become_v blind_a but_o persuade_v herself_o that_o it_o be_v grow_v dark_a it_o be_v just_a so_o with_o all_o heretic_n they_o think_v it_o be_v the_o church_n that_o be_v become_v dark_a and_o full_a of_o obscurity_n and_o not_o themselves_o which_o be_v become_v blind_a to_o find_v any_o thing_n answer_v the_o pelagian_n to_o saint_n augustine_n when_o he_o allege_v the_o multitude_n of_o author_n for_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o multitude_n lucit_fw-la of_o blind_a person_n serve_v to_o no_o use_n and_o by_o that_o only_a his_o majesty_n may_v judge_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v not_o to_o abandon_v nor_o prostitute_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n since_o there_o be_v not_o that_o man_n that_o when_o he_o will_v make_v himself_o judge_v of_o it_o do_v not_o believe_v himself_o only_o clear_v sight_v and_o that_o the_o rest_n as_o homer_n say_v embrace_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n for_o the_o scripture_n consist_v according_a to_o saint_n hierome_n not_o in_o the_o read_n but_o in_o the_o understanding_n and_o man_n not_o be_v able_a to_o assure_v themselves_o of_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o their_o particular_a spirit_n for_o as_o much_o as_o say_v saint_n peter_n as_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o petr._n scripture_n be_v not_o make_v by_o private_a interpretation_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o determine_v the_o difference_n that_o be_v breed_v by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o have_v beside_o the_o scripture_n a_o judge_n external_a and_o interpose_v between_o that_o and_o we_o who_o may_v secure_v we_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o and_o that_o this_o judge_n shall_v have_v other_o mark_n and_o be_v notable_a by_o other_o external_a mean_n then_o by_o that_o of_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v since_o it_o be_v from_o that_o judgement_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o learn_v the_o decision_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o point_n disputable_a otherwise_o question_n in_o religion_n can_v never_o be_v determine_v no_o more_o than_o difference_n in_o civil_a controversy_n if_o we_o shall_v leave_v the_o decide_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n to_o the_o preoccupated_a understanding_n of_o the_o advocate_n and_o party_n &_o that_o there_o be_v no_o judge_n ordain_v above_o they_o and_o set_v between_o the_o law_n and_o they_o to_o interpret_v it_o of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o heretic_n have_v dispute_v the_o word_n catholic_a chap._n fourteen_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o age_n wherein_o there_o have_v not_o be_v conventicle_n to_o raise_v sect_n &_o parasynax_n which_o have_v brag_v of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o have_v draw_v ignorant_a person_n to_o they_o by_o this_o allurement_n the_o reply_n that_o the_o ancient_a sect_n and_o parasynax_n of_o heretic_n have_v effect_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a it_o be_v not_o to_o pretend_v in_o good_a earnest_n that_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o nor_o to_o draw_v ignorant_a person_n to_o they_o by_o that_o allurement_n but_o to_o dispute_v it_o with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o to_o hinder_v least_o by_o the_o possession_n of_o this_o name_n she_o shall_v preserve_v her_o menber_n from_o be_v defraud_v and_o seduce_v by_o heretic_n and_o even_o so_o not_o to_o dispute_v it_o with_o she_o in_o that_o sense_n wherein_o she_o attribute_n it_o to_o herself_o to_o wit_n as_o a_o epethete_n of_o communion_n but_o to_o dispute_v it_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o epithet_n of_o doctrine_n for_o heretic_n have_v always_o sufficient_o know_v that_o this_o take_v in_o the_o true_a sense_n can_v neither_o be_v give_v nor_o maintain_v to_o their_o sect_n and_o therefore_o they_o speak_v not_o of_o this_o word_n but_o either_o in_o seem_v to_o mock_v and_o scorn_n at_o it_o as_o when_o sympronion_n say_v to_o saint_n pacian_n that_o none_o under_o 1._o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o when_o fulgentius_n the_o donatist_n say_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v a_o human_a fiction_n and_o that_o the_o donatist_n according_a to_o the_o report_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n cry_v out_o to_o the_o catholic_n come_v come_v o_o you_o miserable_a mad_a people_n common_o call_v catholic_n or_o in_o disguise_v vincent_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n and_o apply_v it_o to_o signify_v the_o quality_n of_o doctrine_n 26._o and_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o donatist_n which_o call_v themselves_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a truth_n and_o to_o who_o s._n augustine_n say_v you_o be_v those_o that_o hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n not_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o 48_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o from_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o divine_a sacrament_n for_o when_o they_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v admit_v in_o a_o true_a sense_n they_o be_v as_o speedy_o as_o shameful_o drive_v from_o it_o i_o ask_v he_o say_v s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o fortunatus_n the_o donatist_n if_o he_o can_v give_v letter_n communicatory_a which_o we_o call_v form_v 163_o whither_o i_o will_v etc._n etc._n but_o because_o the_o thing_n be_v manifest_o false_a they_o shift_v from_o it_o by_o confusion_n of_o language_n and_o elsewhere_o we_o must_v say_v he_o hold_v the_o 7._o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v call_v catholic_n not_o only_o by_o themselves_o but_o by_o their_o enemy_n for_o whether_o the_o heretic_n themselves_o and_o the_o foster_v child_n of_o schism_n will_n or_o nil_fw-la not_o when_o they_o speak_v not_o with_o those_o of_o their_o sect_n but_o with_o other_o they_o call_v the_o catholic_n church_n no_o otherwise_o then_o catholic_n neither_o can_v they_o be_v understand_v if_o they_o do_v not_o discern_v it_o by_o that_o name_n by_o which_o the_o 4_o whole_a world_n call_v it_o and_o again_o this_o church_n alone_o among_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a heresy_n have_v so_o maintain_v this_o name_n as_o when_o a_o
that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o perish_v for_o since_o the_o excellent_a king_n will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o only_o assure_a mark_n to_o discern_v which_o either_o of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o call_v english_a or_o of_o we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v it_o that_o which_o be_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v doctrine_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v between_o the_o church_n that_o he_o call_v english_a and_o we_o be_v question_n which_o take_v away_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o that_o of_o the_o one_o or_o other_o society_n which_o err_v in_o these_o point_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o essential_a 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o church_n and_o destitute_a from_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o then_o if_o when_o luther_n come_v into_o the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o society_n neither_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a which_o hold_v that_o that_o the_o english_a church_n hold_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o point_n dispute_v between_o she_o and_o we_o it_o follow_v there_o be_v then_o no_o church_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o work_n entitle_v imperfect_a chap._n xvii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v and_o therefore_o the_o excellent_a king_n think_v that_o he_o ought_v with_o so_o much_o the_o more_o care_n in_o 124_o so_o great_a a_o flood_n of_o different_a opinion_n withdraw_v himself_o into_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o reply_n when_o nauplius_n king_n of_o the_o island_n of_o euboea_n now_o call_v negrepont_n will_v at_o the_o return_n from_o the_o siege_n of_o troy_n cause_n the_o fleet_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o be_v shipwrack_v to_o revenge_v the_o death_n of_o his_o sonn_n palamedes_n he_o set_v by_o night_n torch_n in_o form_n of_o a_o beacon_n upon_o one_o of_o the_o mountain_n of_o his_o island_n at_o the_o foot_n whereof_o the_o sea_n be_v full_a of_o bank_n cliff_n and_o rock_n so_o to_o draw_v their_o ship_n by_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o safe_a haven_n to_o run_v hazard_n and_o perish_v in_o those_o shore_n so_o whenantient_a heretic_n who_o saint_n augustine_n call_v mountain_n for_o shipwreck_n will_v cause_v the_o catholic_n to_o make_v shipwreck_n in_o faith_n the_o more_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v pernicious_a and_o mortal_a the_o more_o they_o have_v adorn_v and_o illustrate_v they_o with_o text_n and_o lamp_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o appear_v in_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o arrian_n who_o paint_v and_o colour_v their_o error_n with_o more_o than_o forty_o passage_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o by_o this_o art_n attempt_v to_o call_v man_n back_o from_o the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n which_o can_v not_o be_v pretend_v by_o false_a ensign_n by_o those_o who_o have_v they_o not_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o only_a mark_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o interpretation_n whereof_o by_o their_o subtlety_n they_o make_v subject_a to_o as_o many_o deceit_n as_o there_o be_v word_n but_o above_o all_o this_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o writer_n from_o who_o his_o majesty_n borrow_v this_o language_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o passionate_a champion_n of_o the_o arrian_n for_o though_o he_o cite_v these_o word_n without_o name_v the_o father_n nevertheless_o both_o the_o term_n wherein_o they_o be_v couch_v and_o the_o track_n of_o those_o who_o have_v allege_v they_o before_o he_o to_o wit_n calvin_n in_o some_o of_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o institution_n &_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o work_n can_v suffer_v we_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o be_v take_v from_o the_o author_n of_o the_o work_n entitle_v imperfect_a false_o attribute_v to_o saint_n chrysostome_n now_o that_o this_o author_n be_v not_o only_o a_o open_a arrian_n but_o one_o of_o the_o most_o eager_a and_o violent_a champion_n of_o the_o arrian_n it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o he_o call_v the_o trinity_n triangular_a impiety_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o homousian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 19_o of_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n heresy_n not_o but_o that_o i_o know_v well_o that_o he_o be_v sometime_o allege_v even_o by_o catholic_n with_o the_o title_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n under_o who_o name_n he_o have_v be_v first_o print_v at_o basle_n but_o because_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o allege_v he_o in_o place_n where_o he_o dispute_v not_o against_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o be_v excellent_a and_o above_o all_o in_o the_o discourse_n of_o manner_n and_o a_o other_o to_o allege_v he_o in_o the_o place_n where_o he_o combat_n with_o deliberate_a purpose_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o his_o age_n as_o he_o do_v in_o that_o from_o whence_o the_o word_n be_v take_v which_o his_o majesty_n produce_v for_o behold_v the_o express_a term_n of_o the_o passage_n when_o you_o shall_v 49._o see_v the_o impious_a heresy_n which_o be_v the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n set_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n of_o the_o church_n then_o let_v they_o which_o be_v in_o judea_n fly_v into_o the_o mountain_n that_o be_v to_o say_v let_v they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o christian_n society_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o lord_n then_o know_v that_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n of_o thing_n shall_v arrive_v in_o the_o last_o day_n for_o this_o cause_n command_v that_o the_o christian_n who_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a society_n be_v willing_a to_o receive_v the_o steadfastness_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o the_o scripture_n otherwise_o if_o they_o cast_v their_o eye_n elsewhere_o they_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v and_o perish_v not_o discern_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n now_o that_o by_o this_o impious_a heresy_n and_o by_o this_o army_n of_o antichrist_n he_o intend_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o they_o which_o believe_v the_o equality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n he_o plain_o show_v when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o homily_n that_o the_o great_a spiritual_a evil_n which_o have_v come_v upon_o the_o church_n have_v happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n and_o theodosius_n and_o that_o the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n be_v the_o heresy_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n which_o have_v since_o they_o possess_v the_o holy_a place_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o basilicke_n that_o theodosius_n command_v to_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o the_o catholic_n and_o when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o former_a homily_n that_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o homousian_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o those_o that_o hold_v christ_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a which_o his_o father_n fight_v not_o only_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o even_o against_o the_o other_o heresy_n which_o hold_v not_o the_o like_a and_o in_o the_o nineten_v homily_n when_o he_o call_v the_o worshipper_n 3._o the_o trinity_n those_o that_o honour_v the_o triangular_a impiety_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o passage_n if_o so_o far_o from_o give_v favour_n to_o his_o majesty_n 48._o intention_n as_o contrariwise_o it_o manifeste_n how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o seek_v to_o reduce_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o only_a doctrine_n draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n since_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o point_n which_o of_o all_o other_o shall_v be_v most_o express_a in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o catholic_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n cleree_a in_o a_o testament_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o testator_n refuse_v all_o the_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o other_o way_n of_o disputation_n and_o burn_v with_o desire_n to_o fight_v by_o the_o only_a text_n of_o the_o scripture_n disarm_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o understanding_n of_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n to_o seek_v the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n chap._n xviii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o to_o seek_v according_a to_o the_o council_n that_o saint_n augustine_n heretofore_o give_v to_o the_o devatist_n the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n the_o reply_n when_o s._n augustine_n say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o 21._o church_n there_o be_v a_o question_n between_o the_o donatist_n and_o we_o where_o the_o church_n be_v what_o shall_v we_o they_o do_v shall_v we_o seek_v she_o
express_v we_o must_v have_v recourse_n thereto_o but_o we_o say_v that_o he_o never_o think_v neither_o in_o general_a that_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o religion_n be_v treat_v off_o in_o scripture_n nor_o in_o particular_a that_o the_o contention_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n concern_v baptism_n be_v of_o that_o quality_n and_o we_o maintain_v that_o for_o so_o many_o year_n wherein_o he_o combat_v with_o they_o about_o this_o article_n when_o there_o be_v quenstion_n of_o search_v the_o cause_n to_o the_o bottom_n he_o never_o produce_v one_o proof_n out_o of_o canonical_a scripture_n indeed_o he_o have_v often_o allege_v place_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v some_o approach_n to_o it_o and_o to_o beat_v down_o certain_a defence_n to_o solve_v by_o scripture_n the_o argument_n that_o the_o donatist_n bring_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o maintain_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o point_n contest_v be_v according_a to_o scripture_n in_o as_o much_o as_o according_a signify_v not_o against_o the_o scripture_n to_o establie_o general_a thesis_n and_o preparative_n to_o prove_v the_o proposition_n that_o have_v some_o sympathy_n and_o affinity_n with_o that_o which_o he_o dispute_v as_o for_o example_n he_o do_v indeed_o prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o what_o be_v sound_a 7._o and_o entire_a among_o heretic_n must_v not_o be_v repeat_v again_o when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n but_o that_o baptism_n be_v sound_a and_o entire_a among_o they_o he_o do_v no_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n he_o prove_v indeed_o by_o scripture_n 30._o that_o there_o may_v be_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o baptism_n be_v of_o that_o number_n he_o nether_a do_v nor_o can_v prove_v by_o scripture_n he_o prove_v indeed_o by_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o commaun_n dement_fw-la alibi_fw-la of_o god_n if_o heretic_n have_v receive_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o own_o party_n to_o rebaptise_v they_o for_o we_o also_o read_v that_o our_o lord_n answer_v saint_n peter_n he_o that_o be_v whole_o wash_v need_v wash_v but_o his_o foot_n but_o that_o heretic_n receive_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o sect_n and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d pollute_a and_o profane_a wash_n which_o be_v all_o the_o knot_n of_o the_o question_n he_o no_o be_v prove_n by_o scripture_n for_o as_o 31._o he_o note_v elsewhere_o peter_n of_o who_o this_o be_v write_v have_v not_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n he_o prove_v indeed_o by_o scripture_n that_o they_o 18._o who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o interior_a and_o spiritual_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o judas_n and_o wicked_a catholic_n do_v not_o for_o that_o leave_n to_o confer_v true_a baptism_n but_o that_o they_o who_o be_v neither_o inwardlie_a nor_o outward_o in_o the_o church_n who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a body_n can_v confer_v it_o he_o prove_v no_o where_o by_o scripture_n and_o in_o sum_n the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o solution_n of_o argument_n to_o probable_a and_o conjectural_a preparative_n to_o show_v of_o possibility_n and_o non_fw-la repugnancy_n to_o soften_v and_o dispose_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o reader_n he_o do_v indeed_o prove_v by_o scripture_n but_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o last_o form_n the_o assumption_n and_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o sillogisme_n the_o proof_n of_o this_o precise_a and_o special_a point_n that_o baptism_n whereof_o saint_n john_n cry_v none_o may_v receive_v any_o thing_n except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o heaven_n that_o saint_n peter_n say_v to_o be_v administer_v into_o remission_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d of_o sin_n that_o saint_n paul_n call_v the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o renew_n 4._o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o whereof_o he_o write_v one_o faith_n and_o one_o 3_o baptism_n and_o again_o all_o they_o that_o be_v baptize_v have_v put_v on_o christ_n that_o this_o sacrament_n i_o say_v may_v be_v confer_v out_o of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o fullnes_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o seal_a fountain_n which_o be_v the_o only_a dwell_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v she_o alone_a that_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n and_o the_o authority_n to_o remit_v sin_n that_o this_o can_v subsist_v among_o heretic_n who_o have_v neither_o faith_n nor_o gift_n from_o heaven_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n you_o can_v never_o find_v that_o in_o so_o main_a year_n as_o saint_n augustine_n the_o principal_a opposite_a and_o overthrow_n of_o this_o heresy_n have_v contest_v she_o he_o have_v never_o manifest_v nor_o can_v he_o nor_o he_o have_v not_o pretend_v to_o prove_v by_o any_o passage_n of_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o only_a unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o general_a practice_n and_o universal_a attestation_n of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v say_v he_o observe_v in_o these_o thing_n what_o the_o church_n of_o god_n observe_v the_o question_n now_o between_o you_o and_o we_o be_v which_o of_o you_o or_o we_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o again_o wherefore_o although_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o example_n to_o be_v produce_v of_o this_o out_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d scripture_n yet_o we_o leave_v not_o to_o maintain_v even_o in_o this_o case_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o we_o observe_v what_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o all_o that_o church_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n recommend_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n this_o be_v neither_o open_o nor_o evidentlie_o 19_o read_v neither_o by_o you_o nor_o by_o i_o etc._n etc._n but_o if_o any_o one_o endue_v with_o wisdom_n and_o recommend_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o have_v be_v consult_v by_o we_o upon_o this_o question_n we_o ought_v no_o way_n to_o doubt_v to_o do_v what_o he_o shall_v tell_v we_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v judge_v repugnant_a not_o so_o much_o to_o he_o as_o to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o testimony_n he_o have_v be_v recommend_v now_o he_o give_v testimony_n to_o his_o church_n and_o in_o the_o work_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o same_o donatist_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o have_v prescribe_v nothing_o in_o this_o matter_n but_o 23._o this_o custom_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v the_o original_n there_o of_o from_o their_o tradition_n as_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n observe_v and_o which_o be_v therefore_o not_o without_o cause_n believe_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n although_o they_o be_v not_o write_v from_o whence_o the_o contrary_a appear_v to_o what_o his_o majesty_n pretend_v to_o infer_v from_o this_o passage_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n only_o destitute_a of_o the_o unwritten_a apostolic_a tradition_n can_v decidè_fw-la all_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o refute_v all_o heresy_n for_o the_o point_n in_o agitation_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n concern_v the_o truth_n &_o reality_n of_o the_o baptism_n give_v by_o heretic_n be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o wherein_o obstinate_a error_n will_v make_v a_o heresy_n the_o proof_n of_o this_o be_v first_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o baptism_n import_v so_o much_o to_o the_o faith_n as_o where_o there_o be_v no_o true_a baptism_n there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n saint_n paul_n teach_v we_o that_o 5._o god_n cleanse_v his_o church_n through_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n now_o there_o where_o the_o church_n be_v destroy_v there_o be_v destroy_v this_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o bolie_a catholic_n church_n and_o secondlie_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o baptism_n belong_v so_o to_o faith_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v there_o be_v one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n and_o that_o the_o creed_n of_o constantinople_n set_v among_o the_o 4._o article_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n we_o 〈◊〉_d one_o baptism_n in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o if_o the_o donatist_n err_v in_o disannul_v the_o baptism_n 1_o of_o heretic_n and_o rebaptise_v they_o they_o destroy_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o baptism_n and_o anathematise_v the_o character_n of_o christ_n which_o have_v already_o be_v imprint_v in_o the_o baptize_v by_o baptism_n and_o if_o the_o catholic_n err_v in_o approve_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n and_o in_o not_o rebaptisinge_v they_o when_o they_o come_v to_o they_o they_o sin_v against_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n for_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o have_v no_o church_n and_o nevertheless_o neither_o can_v this_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v prove_v nor_o
the_o contrary_a heresy_n confute_v by_o scripture_n only_o destitute_a of_o the_o help_n of_o tradition_n and_o although_o optatus_n milevitus_fw-la in_o the_o beginning_n have_v attempt_v it_o nevertheless_o the_o success_n have_v make_v saint_n augustine_n who_o have_v go_v further_o in_o this_o question_n see_v and_o confess_v 6._o that_o to_o compose_v it_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o unwritten_a apostolic_a tradition_n and_o what_o saint_n augustine_n allege_v in_o generáll_n against_o petilianus_n must_v not_o be_v object_v against_o this_o if_o any_o one_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o aught_o belong_v to_o the_o faith_n or_o to_o life_n declare_v 〈◊〉_d then_o this_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o legal_a and_o euange_v licall_a scripture_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n for_o himself_o declare_v elsewhere_o as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o that_o this_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n further_o signify_v against_o or_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o apostle_n faith_n he_o have_v not_o say_v more_o then_o but_o further_o for_o if_o he_o have_v say_v more_o then_o he_o have_v condemn_v himself_o he_o that_o desire_v to_o come_v to_o the_o thessalonian_n to_o supply_v what_o be_v want_v in_o their_o faith_n now_o he_o that_o supply_v add_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o thing_n but_o take_v not_o away_o what_o be_v therein_o before_o of_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o the_o thirty_o three_o homily_n upon_o the_o acts._n chap._n xix_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n even_o so_o s._n chrisostome_n as_o well_o elsewhere_o as_o of_o deliberate_a purpose_n in_o the_o thirty_o three_o homily_n upon_o the_o act_n handle_v this_o question_n how_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v discern_v among_o many_o society_n which_o attribute_v this_o name_n to_o themselves_o do_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v two_o instrument_n to_o judge_v and_o decide_v this_o question_n first_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o afterward_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n not_o invent_v by_o any_o late_a body_n but_o always_o know_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n when_o she_o be_v but_o breed_v the_o reply_n there_o be_v four_o 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v make_v upon_o this_o article_n the_o first_o that_o saint_n crysostome_n give_v not_o this_o rule_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o all_o society_n that_o differ_v from_o she_o in_o what_o point_n soever_o but_o only_o to_o discern_v she_o from_o those_o that_o differ_v from_o she_o in_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n divinity_n wherein_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o clear_a and_o express_v then_o in_o any_o other_o the_o second_o that_o this_o mark_n to_o discern_v the_o church_n he_o give_v not_o to_o those_o that_o be_v already_o preoccupate_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o any_o of_o the_o christian_a sect_n but_o to_o the_o pagan_n which_o be_v not_o anticipate_v with_o passion_n for_o any_o of_o the_o party_n that_o combat_v about_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n divinity_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n may_v seem_v to_o judge_v the_o more_o impartiallie_o the_o three_o that_o saint_n chrysostom_n aim_n be_v not_o to_o treat_v serious_o there_o of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o pagan_n but_o to_o stop_n their_o mouth_n and_o to_o show_v that_o whereas_o they_o say_v that_o they_o will_v turn_v christian_n but_o that_o they_o know_v not_o on_o which_o part_n to_o range_v themselves_o these_o be_v but_o pretence_n and_o not_o true_a language_n the_o fowrth_n that_o he_o stopp_n not_o there_o but_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o mean_n because_o of_o the_o subtlety_n and_o shift_n of_o heretic_n be_v not_o sufficient_a require_v and_o exact_v a_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o reduce_v in_o the_o last_o instance_n all_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o question_n to_o this_o point_n that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o have_v remain_v steadfast_a and_o immutable_a in_o her_o communion_n and_o from_o whence_o all_o the_o other_o be_v go_v forth_o and_o that_o come_v forth_o from_o none_o a_o pagan_a say_v he_o come_v and_o say_v i_o will_v turn_v christian_n 33._o but_o i_o know_v not_o to_o who_o i_o ought_v to_o adhere_v for_o there_o be_v among_o you_o many_o strife_n sedition_n and_o tumult_n i_o know_v not_o which_o opinion_n i_o shall_v choose_v nor_o which_o i_o ought_v to_o prefer_v every_o one_o say_v i_o follow_v the_o truth_n who_o shall_v i_o that_o be_o utterlie_o ignorant_a in_o the_o scripture_n believe_v see_v both_o side_n as_o well_o the_o catholic_n as_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o arrian_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o protest_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o certain_o answer_v he_o make_v much_o for_o we_o for_o if_o we_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v reason_n thou_o shall_v not_o without_o cause_n be_v trouble_v but_o if_o we_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o they_o be_v simple_a and_o true_a it_o be_v easy_a for_o thou_o to_o judge_v thereof_o if_o any_o one_o conform_v himself_o to_o they_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n if_o any_o strive_v against_o they_o he_o be_v far_o from_o this_o rule_n but_o what_o will_v become_v of_o it_o say_v the_o gentile_a if_o the_o other_o come_v also_o say_v the_o scripture_n affirm_v this_o thing_n and_o thou_o say_v it_o affirm_v a_o other_o thing_n and_o that_o you_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n into_o diverse_a part_n each_o draw_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o word_n thereof_o to_o his_o own_o side_n etc._n etc._n then_o say_v s._n chrisostome_n we_o will_v inquire_v of_o the_o pagan_a if_o what_o he_o say_v be_v pretence_n and_o excuse_n and_o ask_v he_o ifhe_o condemn_v the_o gentile_n he_o must_v say_v some_o thing_n for_o he_o will_v not_o desire_v to_o come_v to_o we_o till_o first_o he_o condemn_v they_o we_o will_v ask_v he_o then_o for_o what_o cause_n 〈◊〉_d condemn_v they_o for_o he_o will_v not_o condemn_v they_o without_o cause_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o will_v say_v because_o their_o god_n be_v creature_n and_o be_v not_o the_o uncreated_a god_n this_o 〈◊〉_d well_o answer_v we_o for_o if_o this_o 〈◊〉_d find_v in_o other_o heresy_n a_o clause_n which_o evident_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o those_o heresy_n which_o oppose_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o christ_n which_o be_v those_o where_o with_o the_o east_n be_v afflict_v and_o we_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a what_o need_v more_o word_n we_o all_o confess_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n but_o see_v who_o combat_n against_o it_o and_o who_o combat_n not_o against_o it_o we_o call_v he_o god_n and_o pronounce_v of_o he_o thing_n worthy_a of_o god_n that_o he_o have_v power_n that_o he_o be_v not_o servile_a that_o he_o be_v sree_a that_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n of_o himself_o and_o they_o the_o contrary_n and_o then_o final_o see_v that_o this_o attempt_n succeed_v not_o sufficient_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a say_v he_o but_o he_o that_o hear_v without_o preoccupation_n shall_v be_v persuade_v for_o as_o if_o there_o be_v a_o rule_n according_a to_o which_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v square_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o great_a consideration_n but_o it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o discern_v he_o that_o shall_v make_v wry_a line_n even_o so_o be_v it_o now_o but_o wheresore_n then_o will_v he_o say_v do_v they_o not_o see_v it_o preiudication_n and_o human_a cause_n do_v many_o thing_n that_o reply_v 〈◊〉_d they_o say_v also_o of_o us._n and_o how_o can_v they_o say_v it_o for_o we_o have_v not_o separate_v ourselves_o nor_o have_v make_v no_o schism_n nor_o division_n chrysost._n in_o the_o church_n we_o have_v no_o heresiarch_n we_o name_v not_o ourselves_o after_o the_o 〈◊〉_d name_n of_o any_o man_n we_o have_v no_o leader_n as_o to_o one_o martion_n to_o another_o manicheus_fw-la to_o a_o other_o arius_n to_o a_o other_o a_o other_o heresi-founder_n but_o if_o we_o take_v the_o appellation_n of_o any_o particular_a it_o be_v not_o from_o those_o that_o begin_v any_o heresy_n but_o of_o those_o that_o preside_v over_o we_o and_o govern_v the_o church_n we_o have_v no_o doctor_n upon_o earth_n god_n forbid_v we_o have_v one_o alone_o in_o heaven_n this_o also_o will_v he_o say_v the_o other_o likewise_o affirm_v it_o but_o the_o name_n that_o they_o bear_v answer_v he_o to_o wit_n of_o marcionite_n or_o of_o manichee_n or_o of_o arrian_n convince_v they_o and_o stopp_n their_o mouth_n by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o last_o analysis_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o question_n be_v all_o determine_v in_o this_o point_n that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o have_v remain_v unmovable_a and_o steadfast_a in_o her_o communion_n &_o from_o who_o all_o the_o
other_o have_v go_v forth_o and_o be_v go_v forth_o from_o none_o which_o be_v also_o the_o mark_n that_o s._n augustine_n 〈◊〉_d it_o when_o he_o say_v the_o catholic_a church_n 5._o combat_v against_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v oppose_v but_o she_o can_v be_v overthrow_v all_o 〈◊〉_d be_v come_v forth_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n cut_v off_o from_o their_o vine_n but_o she_o remain_v in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o charity_n and_o s._n pacian_n bishop_n 3._o of_o barcelona_n before_o he_o when_o he_o write_v now_o to_o know_v whether_o she_o have_v be_v principal_o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophett_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o corner_n stone_n consider_v whether_o she_o begin_v before_o thou_o whither_o she_o have_v grow_v before_o thou_o if_o she_o be_v not_o withdraw_v from_o her_o first_o foundation_n whether_o in_o separate_a herself_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n she_o have_v not_o constitute_v to_o herself_o her_o master_n and_o her_o particular_a instruction_n if_o she_o have_v argue_v any_o thing_n unaccustomedlie_o if_o she_o have_v form_v any_o point_n of_o new_a right_n if_o she_o have_v declare_v to_o her_o body_n the_o divorce_n of_o peace_n then_o let_v she_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v depart_v from_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v constitute_v forth_o of_o the_o prophett_n and_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o although_o the_o point_n of_o the_o assentiall_a deity_n of_o christ_n deserve_v to_o be_v more_o cleerelie_o express_v in_o scripture_n than_o any_o other_o as_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o testator_n aught_o to_o be_v more_o cleerelie_o express_v in_o the_o testament_n than_o any_o other_o nevertheless_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o heretic_n by_o their_o malice_n and_o subtlety_n shift_v off_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n the_o father_n after_o they_o have_v try_v all_o their_o strength_n to_o bring_v they_o back_o to_o reason_n by_o scripture_n be_v constrain_v see_v they_o can_v not_o make_v they_o yield_v up_o their_o weapon_n by_o that_o way_n to_o changetheir_o battery_n &_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n behold_v say_v saint_n athanasus_n we_o have_v show_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o doctrine_n from_o father_n to_o sonn_n you_o new_a caypha_n decret_a what_o progenitor_n of_o your_o phrase_n and_o your_o term_n will_v you_o bring_v we_o and_o saint_n arian_n hilary_n let_v we_o consider_v so_o many_o holy_a father_n what_o will_v become_v of_o we_o if_o we_o anathematise_v they_o for_o we_o bring_v thing_n to_o this_o point_n that_o if_o they_o have_v not_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n we_o be_v none_o since_o we_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o they_o and_o the_o same_o synod_n saint_n athanasius_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o of_o that_o belief_n from_o whence_o it_o haeret_fw-la appear_v that_o if_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n divinity_n have_v never_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n they_o hold_v the_o light_n of_o the_o perpetual_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o this_o article_n for_o whereas_o saint_n chrisostome_n compare_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o rule_n according_a whereto_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v square_v beside_o this_o that_o according_a signify_v there_o not_o against_o he_o intéd_v that_o scripture_n rule_v all_o thing_n either_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o that_o be_v to_o say_v either_o by_o itself_o or_o by_o the_o mean_n whereto_o it_o remitt_v we_o as_o he_o testify_v himself_o in_o these_o word_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v 2._o that_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v not_o all_o thing_n in_o uriting_n but_o also_o many_o thing_n unwritten_a now_o either_o of_o these_o be_v worthy_a of_o equal_a credit_n of_o the_o rule_n to_o judge_v admit_v by_o saint_n chrysostome_n and_o s._n augustine_n chap._n xx._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n these_o two_o rule_n to_o judge_v the_o king_n with_o the_o english_a church_n embrace_v they_o with_o a_o earnest_a desire_n pronounce_v that_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o doctrine_n final_a ie_fw-fr both_a to_o be_v true_a and_o also_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o run_v from_o the_o spring_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o by_o a_o channel_n have_v be_v derive_v down_o to_o this_o time_n the_o reply_n neither_o do_v saint_n chrisostome_n and_o saint_n augustine_n restrain_v the_o mean_n to_o judge_v of_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n to_o these_o two_o only_a mean_n by_o exclusion_n of_o the_o three_o to_o wit_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n since_o saint_n augustine_n say_v this_o 19_o be_v plain_o read_v neither_o by_o thou_o nor_o by_o i_o and_o again_o the_o apostle_n have_v prescribe_v nothing_o in_o this_o yet_o the_o custom_n opposite_a to_o cyprian_a ought_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o 23._o have_v take_v original_a out_o of_o their_o tradition_n as_o it_o be_v in_o many_o thing_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v observe_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n indeed_o well_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o have_v not_o be_v write_v and_o that_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v that_o from_o thence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d have_v not_o give_v all_o thing_n in_o write_n but_o some_o also_o without_o write_n whereof_o both_o sort_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n worthy_a of_o credit_n and_o elsewhere_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o the_o apostle_n have_v give_v it_o by_o tradition_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a they_o know_v how_o much_o advantage_n and_o profitt_a increase_v to_o they_o thereby_o neither_o be_v the_o question_n in_o the_o disputation_n which_o be_v now_o handle_v between_o his_o majesty_n and_o we_o of_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o right_n but_o of_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o fact_n that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o be_v not_o to_o inquire_v by_o confer_v the_o conclusion_n of_o faith_n with_o their_o principle_n which_o of_o the_o english_a doctrine_n or_o we_o be_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v a_o question_n of_o right_n who_o trial_n beside_o that_o it_o must_v be_v long_o go_v out_o of_o the_o list_n &_o from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n that_o we_o treat_v of_o but_o to_o inquire_v by_o the_o continuance_n &_o comformitie_n with_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n whether_o our_o church_n be_v the_o same_o church_n as_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n which_o be_v a_o question_n of_o fact_n in_o which_o must_v be_v handle_v not_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o what_o have_v be_v believe_v for_o his_o majesty_n be_v of_o agreement_n that_o there_o be_v a_o obligation_n of_o communication_n with_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n which_o flourish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n and_o that_o whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n be_v a_o heretic_n or_o a_o schismatic_n and_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o i_o may_v except_v from_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o majesty_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_a which_o be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o this_o comparison_n consist_v in_o the_o know_v not_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n have_v believe_v well_o or_o evil_a which_o be_v a_o question_n of_o right_n but_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o the_o last_o age_n from_o which_o his_o majesty_n or_o those_o that_o have_v be_v before_o he_o have_v separate_v themselves_o be_v the_o same_o church_n by_o a_o uninterrupt_a succession_n both_o of_o person_n and_o of_o doctrine_n as_o that_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n which_o be_v a_o question_n of_o fact_n and_o capable_a of_o be_v prove_v by_o history_n alone_o so_o as_o the_o subtlety_n of_o spirit_n can_v find_v no_o shift_n for_o it_o now_o to_o leapefrom_o the_o question_n of_o fact_n to_o the_o question_n of_o right_n and_o in_o steed_n of_o examine_v whether_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o this_o time_n have_v the_o same_o belief_n in_o the_o point_n controvert_v between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n as_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n have_v to_o dispute_v whether_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n have_v believe_v well_o and_o with_o what_o reservation_n and_o mollification_n her_o belief_n must_v 〈◊〉_d receive_v it_o be_v to_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o to_o change_v the_o order_n and_o mean_n of_o the_o disputation_n of_o the_o application_n of_o the_o thesis_n of_o this_o observation_n to_o his_o hipothesis_n chap._n xxi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v then_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n the_o
begin_n of_o these_o last_o division_n either_o persuade_v in_o some_o point_n by_o the_o innovator_n or_o join_v to_o the_o party_n of_o the_o innovator_n themselves_o have_v attempt_v to_o seek_v out_o some_o accommodation_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o universal_a religion_n of_o the_o church_n to_o come_v to_o a_o reunion_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o as_o the_o poet_n say_v all_o man_n do_v sinn_n without_o the_o wall_n of_o troy_n and_o 〈◊〉_d within_o it_o will_v be_v always_o easy_a for_o we_o to_o show_v that_o the_o desire_n of_o reconciliation_n rather_o than_o the_o knowledge_n of_o antiquity_n and_o truth_n have_v cause_v they_o to_o speak_v this_o language_n of_o the_o agreement_n or_o disagreement_n of_o the_o english_a reformer_n with_o the_o donatist_n chap._n xxxi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o therefore_o the_o english_a church_n fear_v not_o that_o she_o can_v seem_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o sincere_a arbitrator_n to_o have_v do_v any_o thing_n like_a to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o separation_n they_o out_o of_o a_o jollity_n of_o heart_n and_o without_o any_o cause_n abandon_v the_o catholic_a 〈◊〉_d approve_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o nation_n whereof_o they_o can_v neither_o blame_v the_o faith_n nor_o the_o discipline_n the_o reply_n neither_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n then_o actuallie_o approve_v by_o all_o nation_n for_o these_o prophecy_n in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o nation_n be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o gospel_n must_v be_v preach_v over_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o 24._o be_v full_o accomplish_v as_o s._n augustine_n note_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 2._o world_n but_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v by_o 〈◊〉_d &_o in_o regard_n of_o other_o christian_a sect_n to_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o nation_n because_o the_o extent_n thereof_o be_v more_o eminont_a as_o it_o be_v now_o then_o that_o of_o any_o other_o christian_a society_n neither_o be_v she_o approve_v by_o 〈◊〉_d man_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a nation_n for_o who_o know_v not_o how_o great_a the_o multitude_n of_o other_o heresy_n be_v when_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o donatist_n spring_v up_o and_o how_o much_o great_a then_o when_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n cite_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o observation_n be_v pronounce_v against_o they_o of_o one_o side_n the_o arrian_n possess_v almost_o all_o the_o east_n of_o the_o other_o side_n the_o number_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v such_o in_o africa_n as_o they_o hold_v all_o at_o a_o time_n counsel_n of_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n there_o where_o whole_a nation_n that_o profess_a christianity_n which_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v 〈◊〉_d catholic_n church_n as_o that_o of_o the_o goth_n &_o vandal_n and_o in_o brief_a elghtie_a or_o a_o hundred_o other_o sect_n of_o christian_n which_o be_v then_o in_o the_o world_n divide_v like_o sampsons_n fox_n by_o the_o head_n but_o tie_v together_o by_o the_o tail_n do_v all_o agree_v to_o reprove_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o whereas_o the_o excellent_a king_n add_v that_o the_o donatist_n can_v blame_v neither_o the_o faith_n nor_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n if_o by_o blame_v his_o majesty_n intend_v to_o blame_v with_o reason_n that_o be_v not_o particular_a to_o the_o donatist_n for_o never_o any_o sect_n either_o schismatical_a or_o heretical_a can_v blame_v with_o reason_n the_o faith_n or_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o by_o blame_v he_o intend_v accuse_v and_o slander_v she_o and_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v just_a occasion_n to_o do_v so_o who_o ever_o blame_v the_o faith_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n more_o than_o the_o donatist_n who_o call_v themselves_o the_o bishop_n of_o they_o catholic_a truth_n and_o object_v to_o the_o catholic_n that_o they_o err_v in_o faith_n in_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n reside_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o hold_v that_o baptism_n which_o can_v be_v administer_v but_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v confer_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o society_n of_o heretic_n who_o reproach_v it_o to_o they_o thant_n they_o violate_v these_o oracle_n one_o 4._o faith_n one_o baptism_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o be_v baptize_v if_o thou_o do_v believe_v be_v you_o every_o 8._o one_o of_o you_o baptise_a in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n christ_n purge_v his_o church_n by_o the_o 2._o 5._o wash_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n who_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v as_o a_o publican_n 18._o and_o as_o a_o heathen_a baptism_n be_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o regeneration_n of_o the_o ghost_n the_o 3._o church_n be_v the_o close_a garden_n and_o the_o seal_a fountain_n who_o gather_v not_o with_o christ_n 4._o 11._o scatter_v and_o other_o such_o like_v allege_v by_o they_o in_o so_o great_a number_n as_o vincent_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n cry_v out_o but_o perchance_o this_o new_a invention_n that_o commonit_a be_v to_o say_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n will_v want_v defence_n nay_o she_o be_v assist_v with_o so_o great_a strength_n of_o spirit_n with_o so_o many_o flood_n of_o eloquence_n with_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o protector_n with_o so_o much_o likelihood_n with_o so_o many_o oracle_n of_o divine_a law_n but_o expound_v in_o a_o new_a and_o naughty_a manner_n that_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o such_o a_o conspir_a aice_n can_v never_o have_v benen_fw-la destroy_v if_o this_o same_o embrace_v this_o same_o defend_v this_o same_o extol_v profession_n of_o novelty_n have_v not_o in_o the_o end_n leave_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o motion_n alone_o and_o abandon_v and_o as_o for_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o they_o blame_v it_o who_o tax_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v receive_v without_o expiation_n of_o precede_a penance_n those_o that_o in_o the_o persecution_n time_n have_v deny_v christ_n and_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o pagan_n and_o consequent_o to_o have_v be_v pollute_v with_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o pagan_n who_o accuse_v she_o for_o have_v receive_v convert_v heretic_n into_o her_o communion_n without_o give_v they_o true_a baptism_n which_o can_v not_o be_v give_v according_a to_o they_o but_o in_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o to_o have_v pollute_v her_o communion_n with_o the_o contagion_n of_o unbaptised_a or_o uncircumcised_a spiritual_o and_o so_o to_o have_v lose_v the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o can_v not_o subsist_v without_o the_o true_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o make_v profession_n in_o manner_n of_o a_o conversation_n of_o life_n much_o better_o rule_v &_o more_o reform_v then_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n forbid_v the_o catholic_n to_o reproach_n the_o donatist_n with_o any_o other_o 99_o thing_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o catholic_n who_o call_v themselves_o the_o little_a flock_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o two_o tribe_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n who_o say_v we_o have_v nothing_o and_o possess_v all_o thing_n we_o account_v our_o soul_n to_o he_o our_o riches_n and_o by_o our_o pain_n and_o our_o blood_n we_o purchase_v the_o treasure_n of_o heaven_n and_o in_o breeze_n who_o suppose_v themselves_o to_o have_v such_o reason_n for_o their_o separation_n as_o they_o repute_v the_o catholic_n not_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n as_o have_v lose_v the_o true_a use_n of_o baptism_n whereby_o man_n be_v make_v christian_n &_o when_o they_o speak_v to_o they_o they_o say_v caius_n seius_n caia_n seia_n o_o man_n 〈◊〉_d thou_o be_v a_o christian_n o_o woman_n will_v thou_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o cry_v to_o they_o idem_fw-la come_v o_o you_o ignorant_a and_o wretched_a people_n who_o be_v common_o call_v catholic_n vincent_n 26_o and_o call_v the_o chair_n of_o rome_n the_o chair_n of_o pestilence_n and_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n a_o harlott_n and_o a_o adulteress_n and_o choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v all_o kind_n of_o persecution_n and_o false_a martirdome_n then_o to_o communicate_v with_o she_o if_o i_o persecute_v say_v saint_n augustine_n justly_o he_o that_o ibid._n detract_v from_o his_o neighbour_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o persecute_v he_o that_o detract_v from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o say_v this_o be_v not_o she_o but_o this_o be_v a_o hatlott_n and_o again_o if_o the_o punishment_n and_o not_o the_o cause_n make_v martyrdom_n heaven_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o your_o martyr_n and_o against_o who_o contrariwise_o the_o catholic_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n have_v not_o one_o passage_n of_o scripture_n for_o they_o but_o only_o the_o apostolical_a unwritten_a tradition_n as_o s._n augustine_n
to_o corruption_n and_o that_o what_o be_v incorruptible_a be_v also_o reciprocallie_o impassable_a and_o inalterable_a what_o wonder_n be_v it_o then_o that_o the_o wayfar_a preparation_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v corruptible_a and_o subject_a to_o perish_v before_o it_o come_v to_o the_o term_n of_o corruption_n have_v try_v many_o passion_n many_o accident_n many_o change_n that_o before_o it_o perish_v it_o have_v undergo_v many_o weakness_n sincope_n and_o faint_n that_o this_o ancient_a &_o decrepit_a house_n which_o be_v one_o day_n to_o be_v ruin_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o old_a law_n teach_v we_o that_o that_o which_o wear_v and_o grow_v old_a approach_v to_o ruin_v have_v sum_n time_n be_v amaze_v and_o shake_v that_o this_o light_n that_o be_v final_o to_o be_v extinguish_v &_o bury_v under_o a_o profound_a night_n and_o in_o perpetual_a darkness_n have_v sometime_o be_v obscure_v and_o dim_v and_o have_v suffer_v defect_n and_o eclipse_n and_o contrariwise_o that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n that_o the_o scripture_n declare_v and_o prophesy_v to_o be_v incorruptible_a and_o not_o subject_a to_o perish_v shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o the_o passion_n preserve_v from_o all_o these_o accidens_fw-la and_o dispense_v withal_o and_o warrant_v from_o all_o these_o interruption_n but_o we_o have_v insist_v too_o long_o upon_o the_o thesis_fw-la let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o hypothesis_n which_o be_v of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o two_o first_o period_n and_o principal_o under_o that_o of_o the_o jewish_a law_n for_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n the_o adversary_n to_o christianity_n make_v nine_o notable_a objection_n which_o we_o will_v confute_v in_o order_n one_o after_o a_o other_o the_o first_o be_v take_v from_o the_o history_n of_o aaron_n aaron_n say_v they_o found_v the_o idol_n after_o which_o the_o people_n idolatrize_v it_o be_v true_a aaron_n not_o yet_o invest_v with_o the_o high_a priesthood_n found_v the_o golden_a calf_n after_o which_o the_o people_n that_o 〈◊〉_d to_o say_v by_o synecdoche_n a_o part_n of_o the_o people_n idolatrize_v for_o philo_n the_o jew_n do_v particular_o say_v that_o the_o malady_n have_v not_o seize_v they_o 32._o ibid._n all_o but_o neither_o moses_n who_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o israelite_n church_n and_o in_o who_o only_a person_n reside_v till_o then_o the_o high_a priesthood_n nor_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o leviticall_a tribe_n destine_v to_o the_o future_a guard_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o to_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o law_n be_v touch_v with_o 32_o this_o crime_n for_o as_o soon_o as_o moses_n cry_v if_o any_o one_o belong_v to_o our_o lord_n let_v he_o join_v with_o i_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n gather_v to_o he_o to_o root_v out_o the_o idolater_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o moses_n give_v these_o praise_n to_o levi_n 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v he_o that_o have_v say_v of_o his_o father_n and_o of_o his_o mother_n i_o have_v not_o see_v they_o and_o who_o have_v not_o acknowledge_v his_o brother_n and_o have_v no_o more_o know_v his_o child_n for_o they_o have_v keep_v thy_o word_n and_o that_o god_n himself_o say_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o malachy_n the_o law_n of_o truth_n have_v be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o levi_n and_o 2_o in_o his_o lip_n there_o be_v no_o forwardness_n he_o have_v walk_v with_o i_o in_o peace_n and_o equity_n and_o that_o philo_n the_o jew_n search_v wherefore_o the_o town_n of_o refuge_n have_v be_v take_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o levite_n say_v that_o one_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o jud._n leviticall_a tribe_n destine_v to_o guard_v the_o temple_n have_v slay_v the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o profug_n golden_a calf_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n cite_v the_o same_o history_n reduce_v it_o to_o the_o number_n of_o some_o to_o the_o end_n say_v he_o that_o you_o become_v not_o idolater_n 10._o as_o some_o among_o they_o be_v to_o show_v that_o this_o act_n be_v not_o universal_a for_o that_o the_o sin_n be_v impute_v in_o general_a to_o all_o the_o people_n it_o be_v not_o because_o they_o have_v all_o participate_v in_o it_o but_o because_o they_o have_v not_o endeavour_v to_o revenge_v and_o punish_v it_o in_o the_o act_n and_o yet_o this_o action_n be_v not_o a_o judiciary_n action_n of_o the_o church_n or_o a_o ritual_a custom_n of_o the_o synagogue_n but_o a_o tumultuary_a sedition_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v extinguish_v the_o same_o day_n &_o consequent_o can_v not_o be_v reckon_v for_o a_o interruption_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n for_o as_o 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o brute_n of_o the_o tumulte_n of_o the_o idolator_n be_v raise_v moses_n come_v down_o from_o the_o mountain_n to_o remedy_v it_o now_o what_o proportion_n be_v there_o between_o the_o tumulte_n of_o a_o day_n and_o such_o like_a cloud_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n who_o long_v last_v but_o the_o twenty_o part_n of_o a_o age_n &_o by_o consequence_n give_v no_o occasion_n to_o say_v of_o the_o jewish_a church_n that_o that_o cornelius_n tacitus_n say_v of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o rome_n under_o tiberius_n who_o be_v he_o that_o have_v see_v the_o commonwealth_n &_o the_o pretend_a ieterruption_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o according_a to_o the_o computation_n of_o her_o adversary_n have_v be_v eclipse_v in_o faith_n &_o err_v in_o salvation_n above_o four_o hundred_o then_o year_n &_o as_o they_o say_v of_o epimenides_n that_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o sleep_n young_a &_o awake_v old_a so_o she_o fall_v a_o sleep_n young_a to_o wit_n immediate_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostl_n &_o awake_v old_a that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o end_n &_o in_o the_o last_o wave_n of_o the_o world_n the_o second_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o history_n of_o the_o symptom_n which_o happen_v to_o the_o jewish_a church_n between_o the_o time_n of_o moses_n &_o that_o of_o david_n where_o it_o be_v say_v one_o while_o that_o micheas_n mâde_v a_o idol_n &_o that_o six_o hundred_o 27_o man_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n have_v take_v it_o place_v it_o in_o lais_n a_o city_n of_o the_o sydonian_o possess_v by_o they_o a_o other_o while_n that_o gedeon_n make_v a_o ephod_n in_o 11._o ephra_n and_o that_o all_o israel_n go_v a_o whore_v after_o it_o a_o other_o while_n that_o israel_n transgress_v and_o abandon_v the_o lord_n an_o other_o while_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o hely_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v precious_a that_o be_v to_o say_v rare_a a_o other_o while_n that_o in_o the_o 1._o time_n of_o saul_n the_o ark_n have_v not_o be_v require_v that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o innovator_n gloss_n god_n have_v not_o be_v consult_v in_o his_o word_n but_o for_o the_o 3._o history_n of_o micheas_n so_o far_o be_v it_o off_o that_o from_o the_o act_n of_o micheas_n which_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a act_n no_o more_o than_o that_o of_o the_o six_o hundred_o israelite_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n there_o can_v be_v any_o inference_n draw_v that_o the_o visible_a service_n of_o god_n be_v the_o extinguish_v in_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n as_o luther_n affirm_v that_o this_o history_n fall_v out_o either_o at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o josua_n or_o under_o the_o government_n of_o othoniel_n a_o excellent_a servant_n of_o god_n wherein_o none_o can_v pretend_v that_o the_o true_a service_n be_v extinguish_v in_o israel_n and_o the_o historian_n note_v that_o this_o idol_n remain_v in_o the_o city_n of_o lais_n as_o long_o as_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n remain_v in_o silo_n testify_v that_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n be_v then_o in_o silo._n and_o whereas_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n take_v occasion_n to_o go_v a_o whore_v after_o the_o ephod_n of_o gedeon_n and_o that_o the_o history_n of_o judge_n say_v all_o israel_n go_v a_o whoriug_n after_o it_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o israelite_n of_o the_o city_n of_o ephra_n native_a place_n of_o gedeon_n and_o other_o near_o to_o it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o same_o history_n that_o israel_n prevaricate_v and_o serve_v false_a god_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o synecdoche_n of_o a_o part_n for_o the_o whole_a follow_v this_o sentence_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o scripture_n have_v this_o fashion_n of_o reproof_n that_o the_o 11_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v address_v to_o all_o yet_o concern_v but_o some_o of_o they_o and_o indeed_o in_o the_o history_n of_o josua_n not_o only_o the_o scripture_n say_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n violate_v the_o commandment_n and_o take_v
this_o cause_n so_o abhor_v achaz_n as_o be_v dead_a although_o his_o own_o sonn_n succeed_v he_o they_o do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d he_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o his_o father_n the_o five_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o four_o hundred_o prophett_n that_o achab_n cause_v to_o come_v and_o prophesy_v before_o josaphat_n who_o be_v all_o find_v false_a prophett_n and_o micheas_n alone_o a_o true_a prophet_n but_o neither_o do_v this_o 22._o fall_n out_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n where_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n neither_o be_v those_o prophet_n of_o the_o college_n of_o the_o prophett_n of_o baal_n and_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o those_o of_o who_o before_o elias_n have_v say_v take_v all_o the_o prophett_n of_o baal_n and_o let_v not_o one_o man_n escape_v and_o of_o who_o afterward_o elias_n say_v to_o joram_n sonn_v of_o the_o same_o achab_n what_o be_v there_o 22_o between_o i_o and_o thou_o go_v to_o the_o prophet_n of_o thy_o father_n and_o of_o thy_o mother_n and_o therefore_o when_o josaphat_n will_v cause_v micheas_n to_o come_v he_o ask_v he_o be_v there_o not_o here_o one_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o prophett_n of_o baal_n by_o this_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v the_o same_o difference_n which_o jehu_n afterward_o use_v when_o be_v desirous_a to_o put_v baal_n priest_n to_o death_n he_o say_v take_v beede_n lest_o there_o be_v any_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n among_o you_o but_o let_v the_o servant_n of_o baal_n be_v only_o here_o 10._o the_o six_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o history_n of_o manasses_n a_o idolatrous_a prince_n and_o who_o cause_v all_o manner_n of_o abomination_n and_o false_a worship_n to_o be_v practise_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o juda_n but_o beside_o this_o that_o he_o come_v afterward_o to_o repentance_n and_o then_o drive_v away_o all_o the_o idol_n and_o all_o the_o false_a god_n from_o jerusalem_n and_o command_v the_o people_n of_o juda_n to_o serve_v god_n even_o then_o when_o he_o exercise_v his_o great_a impiety_n the_o church_n and_o the_o multitude_n of_o god_n true_a servant_n be_v not_o for_o all_o that_o invisible_a contrariwise_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o he_o shed_v so_o much_o innocent_a blood_n as_o jerusalem_n 21._o be_v fill_v there_o with_o even_o up_o to_o the_o throat_n by_o mean_n whereof_o although_o there_o have_v then_o be_v no_o solemn_a assembly_n in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o juda_n and_o that_o all_o public_a exercise_n have_v be_v suspend_v there_o yet_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o faithful_a yet_o warm_a &_o still_o breathe_v and_o the_o voice_n of_o their_o blood_n which_o smoke_v and_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n as_o that_o of_o abel_n before_o heaven_n and_o earth_n permity_v not_o that_o the_o true_a religion_n shall_v be_v unknown_a and_o invisible_a there_o for_o as_o many_o execution_n and_o martirdome_n as_o there_o be_v so_o many_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o sweet_a smell_n be_v they_o so_o many_o profession_n of_o faith_n so_o many_o sermon_n so_o many_o seal_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o true_a belief_n which_o refresh_v and_o confirm_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n even_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o those_o that_o persecute_v it_o for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o man_n know_v and_o themselves_o protest_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o they_o be_v banish_v pursue_v and_o martyr_v for_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o illustrate_v by_o her_o lily_n but_o also_o by_o her_o rose_n that_o be_v to_o say_v she_o be_v not_o only_o evident_a by_o her_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a exercise_n which_o be_v the_o congregation_n to_o hear_v and_o adore_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o by_o her_o military_a exercise_n die_v in_o blood_n which_o be_v the_o martyrdom_n and_o the_o execution_n suffer_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o do_v often_o no_o less_o increase_v her_o fame_n and_o renown_n in_o the_o time_n wherein_o she_o be_v oppress_v then_o in_o the_o season_n wherein_o she_o enjoy_v more_o calm_a quiet_a and_o fulfil_v without_o hindrance_n her_o ordinary_a and_o accustom_a work_n so_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v she_o be_v then_o eminent_a in_o she_o most_o steadfast_a 48_o champion_n the_o seven_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o transmigration_n of_o babylon_n during_o with_o time_n they_o pretend_v that_o the_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v interrupt_v but_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o jew_n during_o this_o exile_n have_v the_o true_a external_a exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n wherein_o they_o wrought_v their_o salvation_n &_o perform_v the_o visible_a observation_n of_o all_o their_o worship_n service_n and_o ceremony_n except_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n alone_o which_o can_v not_o be_v offer_v but_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o be_v evident_o distinguish_v from_o other_o nation_n witness_n these_o word_n of_o aman_n to_o assuerus_n there_o be_v a_o 3._o people_n 〈◊〉_d over_o all_o the_o province_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o divide_v into_o many_o part_n that_o practice_n new_a law_n and_o ceremony_n and_o these_o of_o the_o historian_n many_o other_o nation_n and_o sect_n join_v themselves_o to_o their_o religion_n and_o to_o their_o ceremony_n for_o that_o this_o history_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o transmigration_n it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o mardocheus_n be_v one_o of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v transport_v from_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o time_n of_o nabuchodonosor_n and_o of_o jechonias_n and_o it_o be_v not_o contradictory_n to_o this_o that_o assuerus_n write_v that_o aman_n be_v a_o macedonian_a and_o will_v have_v betray_v the_o empire_n to_o the_o macedonian_n for_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n report_v by_o josephus_n sixteen_o hundred_o year_n 6._o a_o go_v have_v it_o allophilus_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o stranger_n and_o that_o the_o greek_a &_o latin_a edition_n say_v a_o macedonian_a it_o proceed_v from_o the_o syriac_a translation_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n make_v after_o the_o death_n of_o alexander_n after_o which_o all_o stranger_n in_o asia_n be_v call_v macedonian_n as_o at_o this_o day_n all_o those_o of_o the_o west_n be_v call_v frankes_n there_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o syriac_a edition_n say_v that_o assicerus_fw-la be_v clothe_v in_o a_o macedonian_a habit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o stranger_n the_o eight_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophett_n who_o often_o deplore_v the_o desolation_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o their_o people_n but_o either_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n divide_v from_o that_o of_o juda_n and_o of_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o schismatical_a israelite_n who_o be_v no_o more_o the_o church_n and_o to_o who_o god_n protest_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o jeremie_n that_o he_o have_v give_v the_o libel_n of_o divorce_n or_o if_o they_o speak_v of_o that_o of_o the_o 8._o kingdom_n of_o juda_n s._n augustine_n teach_v we_o that_o they_o speak_v prophetical_o and_o by_o a_o analogy_n of_o time_n of_o the_o future_a estate_n of_o the_o jewish_a people_n such_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o if_o they_o speak_v by_o synecdoche_n and_o according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o preacher_n who_o censure_n the_o vice_n of_o particular_a person_n in_o general_a term_n to_o the_o end_n to_o reprove_v as_o s._n augustine_n say_v of_o s._n hilary_n the_o more_o severelie_o that_o which_o they_o reprove_v more_o universallie_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o speak_v of_o certain_a particular_a person_n who_o either_o abandon_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o father_n some_o to_o follow_v that_o of_o the_o pagan_n that_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n some_o to_o follow_v that_o of_o the_o schismatickes_n who_o sacrifice_v in_o the_o high_a place_n or_o if_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o communion_n live_v wicked_o there_o as_o concern_v manner_n they_o collect_v say_v s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o donatist_n he_o may_v have_v add_v the_o caluinist_n to_o they_o either_o ignor_n antlie_o or_o fraudulent_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v speak_v either_o of_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v nimgle_v with_o the_o good_a until_o the_o end_n or_o of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o first_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o will_v wrest_v they_o against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o she_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v fail_v and_o to_o be_v perish_v from_o the_o whole_a earth_n the_o nine_o and_o final_a objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o comdemnation_n that_o the_o jewish_a church_n make_v of_o the_o saviour_n of_o
the_o world_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o be_v in_o the_o time_n wherein_o 〈◊〉_d contract_n be_v expire_v and_o that_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v begin_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophett_n say_v 16._o our_o saviour_n until_o john_n and_o saint_n paul_n blindness_n be_v partly_o 25._o fall_v upon_o israel_n that_o the_o fullnes_n of_o the_o gentile_n may_v be_v introduce_v now_o the_o lease_n that_o god_n have_v make_v of_o his_o vine_n to_o the_o jewish_a church_n have_v be_v but_o for_o a_o time_n what_o wonder_n be_v it_o that_o when_o this_o lease_n be_v come_v to_o expire_v the_o prerogative_n that_o she_o have_v by_o virtue_n of_o her_o contract_n shall_v cease_v and_o that_o the_o master_n of_o the_o vineyard_n shall_v let_v forth_o his_o vineyard_n to_o other_o 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o fuffice_v for_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n with_o the_o jewish_a for_o to_o ascend_v to_o the_o time_n before_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o to_o allege_v the_o little_a mention_n that_o be_v make_v there_o of_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o thing_n superfluous_a for_o the_o scripture_n to_o have_v represent_v particular_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n not_o have_v be_v necessary_a but_o after_o the_o last_o institution_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o service_n whereof_o she_o be_v establish_v as_o to_o the_o jew_n after_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o to_o the_o christian_n after_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o evangelicall_a law_n although_o both_o before_o and_o 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o flood_n there_o be_v many_o monument_n of_o it_o for_o both_o before_o the_o flood_n this_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n know_v the_o daughter_n of_o man_n show_n that_o there_o be_v a_o especial_a people_n which_o boar_n the_o title_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n which_o title_n the_o interpreter_n will_v have_v to_o be_v take_v by_o the_o posterity_n of_o seth_n to_o distinguish_v themselves_o from_o the_o posterity_n of_o cain_n when_o seth_n have_v beget_v enos_n and_o that_o they_o begin_v say_v the_o scripture_n to_o all_o chemselue_n 4._o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o universal_a corruption_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o end_n upon_o all_o the_o other_o family_n descend_v from_o seth_n except_o that_o of_o no_n be_v a_o corruption_n of_o manner_n and_o for_o which_o if_o we_o believe_v saint_n hierome_n all_o those_o that_o perish_v with_o a_o temporal_a death_n in_o the_o flood_n 9_o perish_v not_o with_o a_o eternal_a death_n and_o after_o the_o flood_n that_o no_o live_v 〈◊〉_d almost_o to_o the_o sixtith_n year_n of_o abraham_n and_o sem_fw-mi the_o sonn_n of_o no_n who_o luther_n call_v the_o pope_n of_o his_o age_n till_o after_o the_o death_n of_o jacob_n and_o that_o 14._o melchisedech_n king_n of_o salem_n be_v priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o in_o his_o quality_n 25._o blessed_v abraham_n &_o that_o rebecca_n wife_n of_o isaad_n go_v to_o inquire_v of_o god_n upon_o the_o mystery_n of_o her_o child_n show_n that_o even_o they_o the_o true_a worship_n &_o visible_a service_n of_o god_n have_v place_n both_o before_o &_o elsewhere_o they_o in_o the_o family_n of_o abraham_n butto_fw-mi conclude_v grant_v all_o the_o hypothesis_n to_o be_v such_o as_o the_o protestant_n pretend_v &_o that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v interrupt_v both_o before_o the_o law_n &_o under_o thelawe_n what_o will_v that_o make_v against_o the_o christian_n church_n to_o who_o 54._o christ_n hold_v this_o language_n as_o in_o the_o day_n of_o no_n i_o swear_v that_o i_o will_v never_o again_o bring_v the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n upon_o the_o earth_n so_o i_o have_v swear_v that_o i_o will_v 26._o no_o more_o be_v angry_a against_o thou_o thou_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v call_v the_o forsake_v i_o will_v no_o 8._o more_o do_v to_o this_o people_n as_o in_o former_a day_n i_o will_v contract_v a_o new_a alliance_n with_o they_o 10._o not_o according_a to_o the_o alliance_n i_o contract_v with_o their_o father_n when_o i_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n the_o city_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v no_o more_o be_v pull_v up_o nor_o destroy_v the_o glory_n of_o this_o second_o house_n shall_v be_v much_o great_a then_o that_o of_o the_o first_o 5._o 16._o the_o city_n build_v upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o 28._o prevail_v against_o my_o church_n i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o age_n this_o gospel_n 24._o of_o the_o kingdom_n must_v be_v preach_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o then_o the_o end_n shall_v come_v he_o have_v place_v in_o his_o church_n the_o apostle_n prophett_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n &c_n &c_n till_o we_o all_o shall_v meet_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n the_o church_n be_v the_o firmament_n of_o truth_n and_o other_o such_o like_a of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o charity_n of_o the_o ancient_a african_a church_n and_o the_o modern_a roman_a church_n chap._n xxxvii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o sure_o the_o ancient_a church_n to_o recall_v the_o donatist_n that_o be_v refractory_a to_o her_o communion_n have_v accustom_v by_o a_o admirable_a charity_n to_o provide_v even_o for_o the_o te_fw-mi mporall_a commodity_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o shall_v be_v convert_v and_o of_o other_o also_o and_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o knit_v again_o the_o love_n and_o good_a will_n between_o she_o and_o the_o english_a church_n have_v first_o employ_v the_o thunderbolt_n of_o bull_n and_o afterward_o of_o force_n sometime_o open_o and_o sometime_o underhand_o the_o reply_n the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n of_o africa_n offer_v for_o the_o good_a of_o charity_n and_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n to_o yield_v up_o the_o bishopricke_n of_o africa_n not_o to_o those_o donatist_n bishop_n which_o still_o remain_v on_o donatus_n his_o party_n but_o to_o those_o that_o will_v return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v excommunicate_v by_o her_o bull_n not_o those_o that_o will_v return_v from_o the_o english_a division_n to_o the_o catholic_n communion_n but_o those_o that_o after_o many_o admonition_n be_v obstinate_a still_o to_o remain_v in_o the_o separation_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v in_o this_o no_o antithesis_fw-la between_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o those_o of_o the_o modern_a for_o as_o concern_v this_o word_n the_o thunderbolt_n of_o bull_n by_o which_o some_o think_v to_o make_v the_o pope_n censure_n the_o more_o odious_a his_o majesty_n may_v remember_v if_o 〈◊〉_d please_v that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a phrase_n of_o speech_n that_o the_o grecian_n use_v who_o call_v the_o condemnation_n even_o of_o secular_a judgement_n thunderbolt_n and_o to_o express_v that_o one_o be_v condemn_v in_o judgement_n they_o will_v say_v he_o be_v thunder-stricken_a of_o the_o innocence_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o conspiracy_n against_o his_o majesty_n chap._n xxxviii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n traitor_n manifest_o culpable_a of_o the_o parricide_n undertake_v in_o this_o province_n she_o have_v receive_v into_o her_o lap_n and_o still_o whole_o protect_v they_o those_o that_o have_v suffer_v judgement_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n she_o inrolle_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o martyr_n and_o propugn_v from_o day_n to_o day_n their_o innocence_n against_o all_o law_n divine_a and_o humane_a the_o reply_n if_o any_o of_o those_o that_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o abominable_a conspiracy_n project_v against_o his_o majesty_n be_v receive_v at_o rome_n it_o be_v a_o error_n of_o fact_n and_o not_o of_o right_n found_v upon_o a_o false_a information_n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o belief_n that_o they_o have_v imprint_v there_o that_o they_o be_v not_o culpable_a of_o that_o attempt_n as_o prince_n be_v accustom_v to_o receive_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o innocent_a person_n those_o that_o have_v recourse_n to_o they_o out_o of_o other_o province_n if_o the_o verbal_a process_n of_o the_o crime_n be_v not_o send_v to_o they_o that_o they_o may_v inform_v themselves_o of_o the_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n of_o the_o imputation_n and_o this_o law_n be_v a_o law_n of_o resuge_a and_o freedom_n common_a to_o the_o estate_n of_o all_o prince_n but_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n protect_v they_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o be_v culpable_a of_o this_o conspiracy_n i_o know_v to_o well_o how_o much_o i_o have_v hear_v he_o detest_v it_o with_o his_o own_o mouth_n for_o as_o touch_v those_o that_o have_v be_v exclude_v in_o england_n that_o that_o